The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Exploits of Elaine, by Arthur B. Reeve
(#9 in our series by Arthur B. Reeve)

Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing
this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook.

This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project
Gutenberg file.  Please do not remove it.  Do not change or edit the
header without written permission.

Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the
eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file.  Included is
important information about your specific rights and restrictions in
how the file may be used.  You can also find out about how to make a
donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved.


**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**

**eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**

*****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****


Title: The Exploits of Elaine

Author: Arthur B. Reeve

Release Date: February, 2004  [EBook #5151]
[Yes, we are more than one year ahead of schedule]
[This file was first posted on May 15, 2002]

Edition: 10

Language: English

Character set encoding: ASCII

*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, THE EXPLOITS OF ELAINE ***




This eBook was produced by Charles Franks and the Online Distributed
Proofreading Team.



THE CRAIG KENNEDY SERIES

THE EXPLOITS OF ELAINE

BY

ARTHUR B. REEVE




CONTENTS

CHAPTER

   I   THE CLUTCHING HAND

  II   THE TWILIGHT SLEEP

 III   THE VANISHING JEWELS

  IV   "THE FROZEN SAFE"

   V   THE POISONED ROOM

  VI   THE VAMPIRE

 VII   THE DOUBLE TRAP

VIII   THE HIDDEN VOICE

  IX   THE DEATH RAY

   X   THE LIFE CURRENT

  XI   THE HOUR OF THREE

 XII   THE BLOOD CRYSTALS

XIII   THE DEVIL WORSHIPPERS

 XIV   THE RECKONING




THE EXPLOITS OF ELAINE




CHAPTER I

THE CLUTCHING HAND


"Jameson, here's a story I wish you'd follow up," remarked the
managing editor of the Star to me one evening after I had turned
in an assignment of the late afternoon.

He handed me a clipping from the evening edition of the Star and I
quickly ran my eye over the headline:

    "THE CLUTCHING HAND" WINS AGAIN

  NEW YORK'S MYSTERIOUS MASTER CRIMINAL
         PERFECTS ANOTHER COUP

     CITY POLICE COMPLETELY BAFFLED

"Here's this murder of Fletcher, the retired banker and trustee of
the University," he explained. "Not a clue--except a warning
letter signed with this mysterious clutching fist. Last week it
was the robbery of the Haxworth jewels and the killing of old
Haxworth. Again that curious sign of the hand. Then there was the
dastardly attempt on Sherburne, the steel magnate. Not a trace of
the assailant except this same clutching fist. So it has gone,
Jameson--the most alarming and most inexplicable series of murders
that has ever happened in this country. And nothing but this
uncanny hand to trace them by."

The editor paused a moment, then exclaimed, "Why, this fellow
seems to take a diabolical--I might almost say pathological--
pleasure in crimes of violence, revenge, avarice and self-
protection. Sometimes it seems as if he delights in the pure
deviltry of the thing. It is weird."

He leaned over and spoke in a low, tense tone. "Strangest of all,
the tip has just come to us that Fletcher, Haxworth, Sherburne and
all the rest of those wealthy men were insured in the Consolidated
Mutual Life. Now, Jameson, I want you to find Taylor Dodge, the
president, and interview him. Get what you can, at any cost."

I had naturally thought first of Kennedy, but there was no time
now to call him up and, besides, I must see Dodge immediately.

Dodge, I discovered over the telephone, was not at home, nor at
any of the clubs to which he belonged. Late though it was I
concluded that he was at his office. No amount of persuasion could
get me past the door, and, though I found out later and shall tell
soon what was going on there, I determined, about nine o'clock,
that the best way to get at Dodge was to go to his house on Fifth
Avenue, if I had to camp on his front doorstep until morning. The
harder I found the story to get, the more I wanted it.

With some misgivings about being admitted, I rang the bell of the
splendid, though not very modern, Dodge residence. An English
butler, with a nose that must have been his fortune, opened the
door and gravely informed me that Mr. Dodge was not at home, but
was expected at any moment.

Once in, I was not going lightly to give up that advantage. I
bethought myself of his daughter, Elaine, one of the most popular
debutantes of the season, and sent in my card to her, on a chance
of interesting her and seeing her father, writing on the bottom of
the card: "Would like to interview Mr. Dodge regarding Clutching
Hand."

Summoning up what assurance I had, which is sometimes
considerable, I followed the butler down the hall as he bore my
card. As he opened the door of the drawing room I caught a vision
of a slip of a girl, in an evening gown.

Elaine Dodge was both the ingenue and the athlete--the thoroughly
modern type of girl--equally at home with tennis and tango, table
talk and tea. Vivacious eyes that hinted at a stunning amber brown
sparkled beneath masses of the most wonderful auburn hair. Her
pearly teeth, when she smiled, were marvellous. And she smiled
often, for life to her seemed a continuous film of enjoyment.

Near her I recognized from his pictures, Perry Bennett, the rising
young corporation lawyer, a mighty good looking fellow, with an
affable, pleasing way about him, perhaps thirty-five years old or
so, but already prominent and quite friendly with Dodge.

On a table I saw a book, as though Elaine had cast it down when
the lawyer arrived to call on the daughter under pretense of
waiting for her father. Crumpled on the table was the Star. They
had read the story.

"Who is it, Jennings?" she asked.

"A reporter, Miss Dodge," answered the butler glancing
superciliously back at me, "and you know how your father dislikes
to see anyone here at the house," he added deferentially to her.

I took in the situation at a glance. Bennett was trying not to
look discourteous, but this was a call on Elaine and it had been
interrupted. I could expect no help from that quarter. Still, I
fancied that Elaine was not averse to trying to pique her visitor
and determined at least to try it.

"Miss Dodge," I pleaded, bowing as if I had known them all my
life, "I've been trying to find your father all the evening. It's
very important."

She looked up at me surprised and in doubt whether to laugh or
stamp her pretty little foot in indignation at my stupendous
nerve.

She laughed. "You are a very brave young man," she replied with a
roguish look at Bennett's discomfiture over the interruption of
the tete-a-tete.

There was a note of seriousness in it, too, that made me ask
quickly, "Why?"

The smile flitted from her face and in its place came a frank
earnest expression which I later learned to like and respect very
much. "My father has declared he will eat the very next reporter
who tries to interview him here," she answered.

I was about to prolong the waiting time by some jolly about such a
stunning girl not having by any possibility such a cannibal of a
parent, when the rattle of the changing gears of a car outside
told of the approach of a limousine.

The big front door opened and Elaine flung herself in the arms of
an elderly, stern-faced, gray-haired man. "Why, Dad," she cried,
"where have you been? I missed you so much at dinner. I'll be so
glad when this terrible business gets cleared up. Tell--me. What
is on your mind? What is it that worries you now?"

I noticed then that Dodge seemed wrought-up and a bit unnerved,
for he sank rather heavily into a chair, brushed his face with his
handkerchief and breathed heavily. Elaine hovered over him
solicitously, repeating her question.

With a mighty effort he seemed to get himself together. He rose
and turned to Bennett.

"Perry," he exclaimed, "I've got the Clutching Hand!"

The two men stared at each other.

"Yes," continued Dodge, "I've just found out how to trace it, and
tomorrow I am going to set the alarms of the city at rest by
exposing--"

Just then Dodge caught sight of me. For the moment I thought
perhaps he was going to fulfill his threat.

"Who the devil--why didn't you tell me a reporter was here,
Jennings?" he sputtered indignantly, pointing toward the door.

Argument, entreaty were of no avail. He stamped crustily into the
library, taking Bennett with him and leaving me with Elaine.
Inside I could hear them talking, and managed to catch enough to
piece together the story. I wanted to stay, but Elaine, smiling at
my enthusiasm, shook her head and held out her hand in one of her
frank, straight-arm hand shakes. There was nothing to do but go.

At least, I reflected, I had the greater part of the story--all
except the one big thing, however,--the name of the criminal. But
Dodge would know him tomorrow!

I hurried back to the Star to write my story in time to catch the
last morning edition.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Meanwhile, if I may anticipate my story, I must tell of what we
later learned had happened to Dodge so completely to upset him.

Ever since the Consolidated Mutual had been hit by the murders, he
had had many lines out in the hope of enmeshing the perpetrator.
That night, as I found out the next day, he had at last heard of a
clue. One of the company's detectives had brought in a red-headed,
lame, partly paralyzed crook who enjoyed the expressive monniker
of "Limpy Red." "Limpy Red" was a gunman of some renown, evil
faced and having nothing much to lose, desperate. Whoever the
master criminal of the Clutching Hand might have been he had seen
fit to employ Limpy but had not taken the precaution of getting
rid of him soon enough when he was through.

Wherefore Limpy had a grievance and now descended under pressure
to the low level of snitching to Dodge in his office.

"No, Governor," the trembling wretch had said as he handed over a
grimy envelope, "I ain't never seen his face--but here is
directions how to find his hang-out."

As Limpy ambled out, he turned to Dodge, quivering at the enormity
of his unpardonable sin in gang-land, "For God's sake, Governor,"
he implored, "don't let on how you found out!"

And yet Limpy Red had scarcely left with his promise not to tell,
when Dodge, happening to turn over some papers came upon an
envelope left on his own desk, bearing that mysterious Clutching
Hand!

He tore it open, and read in amazement:

"Destroy Limpy Red's instructions within the next hour."

Dodge gazed about in wonder. This thing was getting on his nerves.
He determined to go home and rest.

Outside the house, as he left his car, pasted over the monogram on
the door, he had found another note, with the same weird mark and
the single word:

"Remember!"

Much of this I had already gathered from what I overheard Dodge
telling Bennett as they entered the library. Some, also, I have
pieced together from the story of a servant who overheard.

At any rate, in spite of the pleadings of young Bennett, Dodge
refused to take warning. In the safe in his beautifully fitted
library he deposited Limpy's document in an envelope containing
all the correspondence that had lead up to the final step in the
discovery.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

It was late in the evening when I returned to our apartment and,
not finding Kennedy there, knew that I would discover him at the
laboratory.

"Craig," I cried as I burst in on him, "I've got a case for you--
greater than any ever before!"

Kennedy looked up calmly from the rack of scientific instruments
that surrounded him, test tubes, beakers, carefully labelled
bottles.

He had been examining a piece of cloth and had laid it aside in
disappointment near his magnifying glass. Just now he was watching
a reaction in a series of test tubes standing on his table. He was
looking dejectedly at the floor as I came in.

"Indeed?" he remarked coolly going back to the reaction.

"Yes," I cried. "It is a scientific criminal who seems to leave no
clues."

Kennedy looked up gravely. "Every criminal leaves a trace," he
said quietly. "If it hasn't been found, then it must be because no
one has ever looked for it in the right way."

Still gazing at me keenly, he added, "Yes, I already knew there
was such a man at large. I have been called in on that Fletcher
case--he was a trustee of the University, you know."

"All right," I exclaimed, a little nettled that he should have
anticipated me even so much in the case. "But you haven't heard
the latest."

"What is it?" he asked with provoking calmness,

"Taylor Dodge," I blurted out, "has the clue. To-morrow he will
track down the man!"

Kennedy fairly jumped as I repeated the news.

"How long has he known?" he demanded eagerly.

"Perhaps three or four hours," I hazarded.

Kennedy gazed at me fixedly.

"Then Taylor Dodge is dead!" he exclaimed, throwing off his acid-
stained laboratory smock and hurrying into his street clothes.

"Impossible!" I ejaculated.

Kennedy paid no attention to the objection. "Come, Walter," he
urged. "We must hurry, before the trail gets cold."

There was something positively uncanny about Kennedy's assurance.
I doubted--yet I feared.

It was well past the middle of the night when we pulled up in a
night-hawk taxicab before the Dodge house, mounted the steps and
rang the bell.

Jennings answered sleepily, but not so much so that he did not
recognize me. He was about to bang the door shut when Kennedy
interposed his foot.

"Where is Mr. Dodge?" asked Kennedy. "Is he all right?"

"Of course he is--in bed," replied the butler.

Just then we heard a faint cry, like nothing exactly human. Or was
it our heightened imaginations, under the spell of the darkness?

"Listen!" cautioned Kennedy.

We did, standing there now in the hall. Kennedy was the only one
of us who was cool. Jennings' face blanched, then he turned
tremblingly and went down to the library door whence the sounds
had seemed to come.

He called but there was no answer. He turned the knob and opened
the door. The Dodge library was a large room. In the center stood
a big flat-topped desk of heavy mahogany. It was brilliantly
lighted.

At one end of the desk was a telephone. Taylor Dodge was lying on
the floor at that end of the desk--perfectly rigid--his face
distorted--a ghastly figure. A pet dog ran over, sniffed
frantically at his master's legs and suddenly began to howl
dismally.

Dodge was dead!

"Help!" shouted Jennings.

Others of the servants came rushing in. There was for the moment
the greatest excitement and confusion.

Suddenly a wild figure in flying garments flitted down the stairs
and into the library, dropping beside the dead man, without
seeming to notice us at all.

"Father!" shrieked a woman's voice, heart broken. "Father! Oh--my
God--he--he is dead!"

It was Elaine Dodge.

With a mighty effort, the heroic girl seemed to pull herself
together.

"Jennings," she cried, "Call Mr. Bennett--immediately!"

From the one-sided, excited conversation of the butler over the
telephone, I gathered that Bennett had been in the process of
disrobing in his own apartment uptown and would be right down.

Together, Kennedy, Elaine and myself lifted Dodge to a sofa and
Elaine's aunt, Josephine, with whom she lived, appeared on the
scene, trying to quiet the sobbing girl.

Kennedy and I withdrew a little way and he looked about curiously.

"What was it?" I whispered. "Was it natural, an accident, or--or
murder?"

The word seemed to stick in my throat. If it was a murder, what
was the motive? Could it have been to get the evidence which Dodge
had that would incriminate the master criminal?

Kennedy moved over quietly and examined the body of Dodge. When he
rose, his face had a peculiar look.

"Terrible!" he whispered to me. "Apparently he had been working at
his accustomed place at the desk when the telephone rang. He rose
and crossed over to it. See! That brought his feet on this
register let into the floor. As he took the telephone receiver
down a flash of light must have shot from it to his ear. It shows
the characteristic electric burn."

"The motive?" I queried.

"Evidently his pockets had been gone through, though none of the
valuables were missing. Things on his desk show that a hasty
search has been made."

Just then the door opened and Bennett burst in.

As he stood over the body, gazing down at it, repressing the
emotions of a strong man, he turned to Elaine and in a low voice,
exclaimed, "The Clutching Hand did this! I shall consecrate my
life to bring this man to justice!"

He spoke tensely and Elaine, looking up into his face, as if
imploring his help in her hour of need, unable to speak, merely
grasped his hand.

Kennedy, who in the meantime had stood apart from the rest of us,
was examining the telephone carefully.

"A clever crook," I heard him mutter between his teeth. "He must
have worn gloves. Not a finger print--at least here."

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Perhaps I can do no better than to reconstruct the crime as
Kennedy later pieced these startling events together.

Long after I had left and even after Bennett left, Dodge continued
working in his library, for he was known as a prodigious worker.

Had he taken the trouble, however, to pause and peer out into the
moonlight that flooded the back of his house, he might have seen
the figures of two stealthy crooks crouching in the half shadows
of one of the cellar windows.

One crook was masked by a handkerchief drawn tightly about his
lower face, leaving only his eyes visible beneath the cap with
visor pulled down over his forehead. He had a peculiar stoop of
the shoulders and wore his coat collar turned up. One hand, the
right, seemed almost deformed. It was that which gave him his name
in the underworld--the Clutching Hand.

The masked crook held carefully the ends of two wires attached to
an electric feed, and sending his pal to keep watch outside, he
entered the cellar of the Dodge house through a window whose pane
they had carefully removed. As he came through the window he
dragged the wires with him, and, alter a moment's reconnoitering
attached them to the furnace pipe of the old-fashioned hot-air
heater where the pipe ran up through the floor to the library
above. The other wire was quickly attached to the telephone where
its wires entered.

Upstairs, Dodge, evidently uneasy in his mind about the precious
"Limpy Red" letter, took it from the safe along with most of the
other correspondence and, pressing a hidden spring in the wall,
opened a secret panel, placed most of the important documents in
this hiding place. Then he put some blank sheets of paper in an
envelope and returned it to the safe.

Downstairs the masked master criminal had already attached a
voltmeter to the wires he had installed, waiting.

Just then could be heard the tinkle of Dodge's telephone and the
old man rose to answer it. As he did so he placed his foot on the
iron register, his hand taking the telephone and the receiver. At
that instant came a powerful electric flash. Dodge sank on the
floor grasping the instrument, electrocuted. Below, the master
criminal could scarcely refrain from exclaiming with satisfaction
as his voltmeter registered the powerful current that was passing.

A moment later the criminal slid silently into Dodge's room.
Carefully putting on rubber gloves and avoiding touching the
register, he wrenched the telephone from the grasp of the dead
man, replacing it in its normal position. Only for a second did he
pause to look at his victim as he destroyed the evidence of his
work.

Minutes were precious. First Dodge's pockets, then his desk
engaged his attention. There was left the safe.

As he approached the strong box, the master criminal took two
vials from his pockets. Removing a bust of Shakespeare that stood
on the safe, he poured the contents of the vials in two mixed
masses of powder forming a heap on the safe, into which he
inserted two magnesium wires.

He lighted them, sprang back, hiding his eyes from the light, and
a blinding gush of flame, lasting perhaps ten seconds, poured out
from the top of the safe.

It was not an explosion, but just a dazzling, intense flame that
sizzled and crackled. It seemed impossible, but the glowing mass
was literally sinking, sinking down into the cold steel. At last
it burned through--as if the safe had been of tinder!

Without waiting a moment longer than necessary, the masked
criminal advanced again and actually put his hand down through the
top of the safe, pulling out a bunch of papers. Quickly he thrust
them all, with just a glance, into his pocket.

Still working quickly, he took the bust of the great dramatist
which he had removed and placed it under the light. Next from his
pocket he drew two curious stencils, as it were, which he had
apparently carefully prepared. With his hands, still carefully
gloved, he rubbed the stencils on his hair, as if to cover them
with a film of natural oils. Then he deliberately pressed them
over the statue in several places. It was a peculiar action and he
seemed to fairly gloat over it when it was done, and the bust
returned to its place, covering the hole.

As noiselessly as he had come, he made his exit after one last
malignant look at Dodge. It was now but the work of a moment to
remove the wires he had placed, and climb out of the window,
taking them and destroying the evidence down in the cellar.

A low whistle from the masked crook, now again in the shadow,
brought his pal stealthily to his side.

"It's all right," he whispered hoarsely to the man. "Now, you
attend to Limpy Red."

The villainous looking pal nodded and without another word the two
made their getaway, safely, in opposite directions.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

When Limpy Red, still trembling, left the office of Dodge earlier
in the evening, he had repaired as fast as his shambling feet
would take him to his favorite dive upon Park Row. There he might
have been seen drinking with any one who came along, for Limpy had
money--blood money,--and the recollection of his treachery and
revenge must both be forgotten and celebrated.

Had the Bowery "sinkers" not got into his eyes, he might have
noticed among the late revellers, a man who spoke to no one but
took his place nearby at the bar.

Limpy had long since reached the point of saturation and, lurching
forth from his new found cronies, he sought other fields of
excitement. Likewise did the newcomer, who bore a strange
resemblance to the look-out who had been stationed outside at the
Dodge house a scant half hour before.

What happened later was only a matter of seconds. It came when the
hated snitch--for gangdom hates the informer worse than anything
else dead or alive--had turned a sufficiently dark and deserted
corner.

A muffled thud, a stifled groan followed as a heavy section of
lead pipe wrapped in a newspaper descended on the crass skull of
Limpy. The wielder of the improvised but fatal weapon permitted
himself the luxury of an instant's cruel smile--then vanished into
the darkness leaving another complete job for the coroner and the
morgue.

It was the vengeance of the Clutching Hand--swift, sure,
remorseless.

And yet it had not been a night of complete success for the master
criminal, as anyone might have seen who could have followed his
sinuous route to a place of greater safety.

Unable to wait longer he pulled the papers he had taken from the
safe from his pocket. His chagrin at finding them to be blank
paper found only one expression of foiled fury--that menacing
clutching hand!

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Kennedy had turned from his futile examination for marks on the
telephone. There stood the safe, a moderate sized strong box but
of a modern type. He tried the door. It was locked. There was not
a mark on it. The combination had not been tampered with. Nor had
there been any attempt to "soup" the safe.

With a quick motion he felt in his pocket as if looking for
gloves. Finding none, he glanced about, and seized a pair of tongs
from beside the grate. With them, in order not to confuse any
possible finger prints on the bust, he lifted it off. I gave a
gasp of surprise.

There, in the top of the safe, yawned a gaping hole through which
one could have thrust his arm!

"What is it?" we asked, crowding about him.

"Thermit," he replied laconically.

"Thermit?" I repeated.

"Yes--a compound of iron oxide and powdered aluminum invented by a
chemist at Essen, Germany. It gives a temperature of over five
thousand degrees. It will eat its way through the strongest
steel."

Jennings, his mouth wide open with wonder, advanced to take the
bust from Kennedy.

"No--don't touch it," he waved him off, laying the bust on the
desk. "I want no one to touch it--don't you see how careful I was
to use the tongs that there might be no question about any clue
this fellow may have left on the marble?"

As he spoke, Craig was dusting over the surface of the bust with
some black powder.

"Look!" exclaimed Craig suddenly.

We bent over. The black powder had in fact brought out strongly
some peculiar, more or less regular, black smudges.

"Finger prints!" I cried excitedly.

"Yes," nodded Kennedy, studying them closely. "A clue--perhaps."

"What--those little marks--a clue?" asked a voice behind us.

I turned and saw Elaine, looking over our shoulders, fascinated.
It was evidently the first time she had realized that Kennedy was
in the room.

"How can you tell anything by that?'" she asked.

"Why, easily," he answered picking up a brass blotting-pad which
lay on the desk. "You see, I place my finger on this weight--so. I
dust the powder over the mark--so. You could see it even without
the powder on this glass. Do you see those lines? There are
various types of markings--four general types--and each person's
markings are different, even if of the same general type--loop,
whorl, arch, or composite."

He continued working as he talked.

"Your thumb marks, for example, Miss Dodge, are different from
mine. Mr. Jameson's are different from both of us. And this
fellow's finger prints are still different. It is mathematically
impossible to find two alike in every respect."

Kennedy was holding the brass blotter near the bust as he talked.

I shall never forget the look of blank amazement on his face as he
bent over closer.

"My God!" he exclaimed excitedly, "this fellow is a master
criminal! He has actually made stencils or something of the sort
on which by some mechanical process he has actually forged the
hitherto infallible finger prints!"

I, too, bent over and studied the marks on the bust and those
Kennedy had made on the blotter to show Elaine.

THE FINGER PRINTS ON THE BUST WERE KENNEDY'S OWN.




CHAPTER II

THE TWILIGHT SLEEP


Kennedy had thrown himself wholeheartedly into the solution of the
mysterious Dodge case.

Far into the night, after the challenge of the forged finger
print, he continued at work, endeavoring to extract a clue from
the meagre evidence--the bit of cloth and trace of poison already
obtained from other cases, and now added the strange succession of
events that surrounded the tragedy we had just witnessed.

We dropped around at the Dodge house the next morning. Early
though it was, we found Elaine, a trifle paler but more lovely
than ever, and Perry Bennett themselves vainly endeavoring to
solve the mystery of the Clutching Hand.

They were at Dodge's desk, she in the big desk chair, he standing
beside her, looking over some papers.

"There's nothing there," Bennett was saying as we entered.

I could not help feeling that he was gazing down at Elaine a bit
more tenderly than mere business warranted.

"Have you--found anything?" queried Elaine anxiously, turning
eagerly to Kennedy.

"Nothing--yet," he answered shaking his head, but conveying a
quiet idea of confidence in his tone.

Just then Jennings, the butler, entered, bringing the morning
papers. Elaine seized the Star and hastily opened it. On the first
page was the story I had telephone down very late in the hope of
catching a last city edition.

We all bent over and Craig read aloud:

"CLUTCHING HAND" STILL AT LARGE

NEW YORK'S MASTER CRIMINAL REMAINS UNDETECTED--PERPETRATES NEW
DARING MURDER AND ROBBERY OF MILLIONAIRE DODGE

He had scarcely finished reading the brief but alarming news story
that followed and laid the paper on the desk, when a stone came
smashing through the window from the street.

Startled, we all jumped to our feet. Craig hurried to the window.
Not a soul was in sight!

He stooped and picked up the stone. To it was attached a piece of
paper. Quickly he unfolded it and read:

"Craig Kennedy will give up his search for the "Clutching Hand"--
or die!"

Later I recalled that there seemed to be a slight noise
downstairs, as if at the cellar window through which the masked
man had entered the night before.

In point of fact, one who had been outside at the time might
actually have seen a sinister face at that cellar window, but to
us upstairs it was invisible. The face was that of the servant,
Michael.

Without another word Kennedy passed into the drawing room and took
his hat and coat. Both Elaine and Bennett followed.

"I'm afraid I must ask you to excuse me--for the present," Craig
apologized.

Elaine looked at him anxiously.

"You--you will not let that letter intimidate you?" she pleaded,
laying her soft white hand on his arm. "Oh, Mr. Kennedy," she
added, bravely keeping back the tears, "avenge him! All the money
in the world would be too little to pay--if only--"

At the mere mention of money Kennedy's face seemed to cloud, but
only for a moment. He must have felt the confiding pressure of her
hand, for as she paused, appealingly, he took her hand in his,
bowing slightly over it to look closer into her upturned face.

"I'll try," he said simply.

Elaine did not withdraw her hand as she continued to look up at
him. Craig looked at her, as I had never seen him look at a woman
before in all our long acquaintance.

"Miss Dodge," he went on, his voice steady as though he were
repressing something, "I will never take another case until the
'Clutching Hand' is captured."

The look of gratitude she gave him would have been a princely
reward in itself.

I did not marvel that all the rest of that day and far into the
night Kennedy was at work furiously in his laboratory, studying
the notes, the texture of the paper, the character of the ink,
everything that might perhaps suggest a new lead. It was all,
apparently, however, without result.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

It was some time after these events that Kennedy, reconstructing
what had happened, ran across, in a strange way which I need not
tire the reader by telling, a Dr. Haynes, head of the Hillside
Sanitarium for Women, whose story I shall relate substantially as
we received it from his own lips:

It must have been that same night that a distinguished visitor
drove up in a cab to our Hillside Sanitarium, rang the bell and
was admitted to my office. I might describe him as a moderately
tall, well-built man with a pleasing way about him. Chiefly
noticeable, it seems to me, were his mustache and bushy beard,
quite medical and foreign.

I am, by the way, the superintending physician, and that night I
was sitting with Dr. Thompson, my assistant, in the office
discussing a rather interesting case, when an attendant came in
with a card and handed it to me. It read simply, "Dr. Ludwig
Reinstrom, Coblenz."

"Here's that Dr. Reinstrom, Thompson, about whom my friend in
Germany wrote the other day," I remarked, nodding to the attendant
to admit Dr. Reinstrom.

I might explain that while I was abroad some time ago, I made a
particular study of the "Daemmerschlaf"--otherwise, the "twilight
sleep," at Freiburg where it was developed and at other places in
Germany where the subject had attracted great attention. I was
much impressed and had imported the treatment to Hillside.

While we waited I reached into my desk and drew out the letter to
which I referred, which ended, I recall:

"As Dr. Reinstrom is in America, he will probably call on you. I
am sure you will be glad to know him.

"With kindest regards, I am,

"Fraternally yours,

"EMIL SCHWARZ, M. D.,

"Director, Leipsic Institute of Medicine."

"Most happy to meet you, Dr. Reinstrom," I greeted the new
arrival, as he entered our office.

For several minutes we sat and chatted of things medical here and
abroad.

"What is it, Doctor," I asked finally, "that interests you most in
America?"

"Oh," he replied quickly with an expressive gesture, "it is the
broadmindedness with which you adopt the best from all over the
world, regardless of prejudice. For instance, I am very much
interested in the new twilight sleep. Of course you have borrowed
it largely from us, but it interests me to see whether you have
modified it with practice. In fact I have come to the Hillside
Sanitarium particularly to see it used. Perhaps we may learn
something from you."

It was most gracious and both Dr. Thompson and myself were charmed
by our visitor. I reached over and touched a call-button and our
head nurse entered from a rear room.

"Are there any operations going on now?" I asked.

She looked mechanically at her watch. "Yes, there are two cases,
now, I think," she answered.

"Would you like to follow our technique, Doctor?" I asked, turning
to Dr. Reinstorm.

"I should be delighted," he acquiesced.

A moment later we passed down the corridor of the Sanitarium,
still chatting. At the door of a ward I spoke to the attendant who
indicated that a patient was about to be anesthetized, and
Reinstrom and I entered the room.

There, in perfect quiet, which is an essential part of the
treatment, were several women patients lying in bed in the ward.
Before us two nurses and a doctor were in attendance on one.

I spoke to the Doctor, Dr. Holmes, by the way, who bowed politely
to the distinguished Dr. Reinstrom, then turned quickly to his
work.

"Miss Sears," he asked of one of the nurses, "will you bring me
that hypodermic needle? How are you getting on, Miss Stern?" to
the other who was scrubbing the patient's arm with antiseptic soap
and water, thoroughly sterilizing the skin.

"You will see, Dr. Reinstrom." I interposed in a low tone, "that
we follow in the main your Freiburg treatment. We use scopolamin
and narkophin."

I held up the bottle, as I said it, a rather peculiar shaped
bottle, too.

"And the pain?" he asked.

"Practically the same as in your experience abroad. We do not
render the patient unconscious, but prevent her from remembering
anything that goes on."

Dr. Holmes, the attending physician, was just starting the
treatment. Filling his hypodermic, he selected a spot on the
patient's arm, where it had been scrubbed and sterilized, and
injected the narcotic.

"How simply you do it all, here!" exclaimed Reinstrom in surprise
and undisguised admiration. "You Americans are wonderful!"

"Come--see a patient who is just recovering," I added, much
flattered by the praise, which, from a German physician, meant
much.

Reinstrom followed me out of the door and we entered a private
room of the hospital where another woman patient lay in bed
carefully watched by a nurse.

"How do you do?" I nodded to the nurse in a modulated tone.
"Everything progressing favorably?"

"Perfectly," she returned, as Reinstrom, Haynes and myself formed
a little group about the bedside of the unconscious woman.

"And you say they have no recollection of anything that happens?"
asked Reinstrom.

"Absolutely none--if the treatment is given properly," I replied
confidently.

I picked up a piece of bandage which was the handiest thing about
me and tied it quite tightly about the patient's arm.

As we waited, the patient, who was gradually coming from under the
drug, roused herself.

"What is that--it hurts!" she said putting her hand on the bandage
I had tied tightly.

"That is all right. Just a moment. I'll take it off. Don't you
remember it?" I asked.

She shook her head. I smiled at Reinstrom.

"You see, she has no recollection of my tying the bandage on her
arm," I pointed out.

"Wonderful!" ejaculated Reinstrom as we left the room.

All the way back to the office he was loud in his praises and
thanked us most heartily, as he put on his hat and coat and shook
hands a cordial good-bye.

Now comes the strange part of my story. After Reinstrom had gone,
Dr. Holmes, the attending physician of the woman whom we had seen
anesthetized, missed his syringe and the bottle of scopolamine.

"Miss Sears," he asked rather testily, "what have you done with
the hypodermic and the scopolamine?"

"Nothing," she protested.

"You must have done something."

She repeated that she had not.

"Well, it is very strange then," he said, "I am positive I laid
the syringe and the bottle right here on this tray on the table."

Holmes, Miss Sears and Miss Stern all hunted, but it could not be
found. Others had to be procured.

I thought little of it at the time, but since then it has occurred
to me that it might interest you, Professor Kennedy, and I give it
to you for what it may be worth.

It was early the next morning that I awoke to find Kennedy already
up and gone from our apartment. I knew he must be at the
laboratory, and, gathering the mail, which the postman had just
slipped through the letter slot, I went over to the University to
see him. As I looked over the letters to cull out my own, one in a
woman's handwriting on attractive notepaper addressed to him
caught my eye.

As I came up the path to the Chemistry Building I saw through the
window that, in spite of his getting there early, he was finding
it difficult to keep his mind on his work. It was the first time I
had ever known anything to interfere with science in his life.

I thought of the letter again.

Craig had lighted a Bunsen burner under a large glass retort. But
he had no sooner done so than he sat down on a chair and, picking
up a book which I surmised might be some work on toxicology,
started to read.

He seemed not to be able, for the moment, to concentrate his mind
and after a little while closed the book and gazed straight ahead
of him. Again I thought of the letter, and the vision that, no
doubt, he saw of Elaine making her pathetic appeal for his help.

As he heard my footstep in the hall, it must have recalled him for
he snapped the book shut and moved over quickly to the retort.

"Well," I exclaimed as I entered, "you are the early bird. Did you
have any breakfast?"

I tossed down the letters. He did not reply. So I became absorbed
in the morning paper. Still, I did not neglect to watch him
covertly out of the corner of my eye. Quickly he ran over the
letters, instead of taking them, one by one, in his usual
methodical way. I quite complimented my own superior acumen. He
selected the dainty note.

A moment Craig looked at it in anticipation, then tore it open
eagerly. I was still watching his face over the top of the paper
and was surprised to see that it showed, first, amazement, then
pain, as though something had hurt him.

He read it again--then looked straight ahead, as if in a daze.

"Strange, how much crime there is now," I commented, looking up
from the paper I had pretended reading.

No answer.

"One would think that one master criminal was enough," I went on.

Still no answer.

He continued to gaze straight ahead at blankness.

"By George," I exclaimed finally, banging my fist on the table and
raising my voice to catch his attention, "you would think we had
nothing but criminals nowadays."

My voice must have startled him. The usually imperturbable old
fellow actually jumped. Then, as my question did not evidently
accord with what was in his mind, he answered at random, "Perhaps-
-I wonder if--" and then he stopped, noncommittally.

Suddenly he jumped up, bringing his tightly clenched fist down
with a loud clap into the palm of his hand.

"By heaven!" he exclaimed, "I--I will!"

Startled at his incomprehensible and unusual conduct I did not
attempt to pursue the conversation but let him alone as he strode
hastily to the telephone. Almost angrily he seized the receiver
and asked for a number. It was not like Craig and I could not
conceal my concern.

"Wh-what's the matter, Craig?" I blurted out eagerly.

As he waited for the number, he threw the letter over to me. I
took it and read:

"Professor Craig Kennedy, "The University, The Heights, City.

"Dear Sir,--

"I have come to the conclusion that your work is a hindrance
rather than an assistance in clearing up my father's death and I
hereby beg to state that your services are no longer required.
This is a final decision and I beg that you will not try to see me
again regarding the matter.

"Very truly yours, ELAINE DODGE."

If it had been a bomb I could not have been more surprised. A
moment before I think I had just a sneaking suspicion of jealousy
that a woman--even Elaine--should interest my old chums. But now
all that was swept away. How could any woman scorn him?

I could not make it out.

Kennedy impatiently worked the receiver up and down, repeating the
number. "Hello--hello," he repeated, "Yes--hello. Is Miss--oh--
good morning, Miss Dodge."

He was hurrying along as if to give her no chance to cut him off.
"I have just received a letter, Miss Dodge, telling me that you
don't want me to continue investigating your father's death, and
not to try to see you again about--"

He stopped. I could hear the reply, as sometimes one can when the
telephone wire conditions are a certain way and the quality of the
voice of the speaker a certain kind.

"Why--no--Mr. Kennedy, I have written you no letter."

The look of mingled relief and surprise that crossed Craig's face
spoke volumes.

"Miss Dodge," he almost shouted, "this is a new trick of the
Clutching Hand. I--I'll be right over."

Craig hung up the receiver and turned from the telephone.
Evidently he was thinking deeply. Suddenly his face seemed to
light up. He made up his mind to something and a moment later he
opened the cabinet--that inexhaustible storehouse from which he
seemed to draw weird and curious instruments that met the ever new
problems which his strange profession brought to him.

I watched curiously. He took out a bottle and what looked like a
little hypodermic syringe, thrust them into his pocket and, for
once, oblivious to my very existence, deliberately walked out of
the laboratory.

I did not propose to be thus cavalierly dismissed. I suppose it
would have looked ridiculous to a third party but I followed him
as hastily as if he had tried to shut the door on his own shadow.

We arrived at the corner above the Dodge house just in time to see
another visitor--Bennett--enter. Craig quickened his pace.
Jennings had by this time become quite reconciled to our presence
and a moment later we were entering the drawing room, too.

Elaine was there, looking lovelier than ever in the plain black
dress, which set off the rosy freshness of her face.

"And, Perry," we heard her say, as we were ushered in, "someone
has even forged my name--the handwriting and everything--telling
Mr. Kennedy to drop the case--and I never knew."

She stopped as we entered. We bowed and shook hands with Bennett.
Elaine's Aunt Josephine was in the room, a perfect duenna.

"That's the limit!" exclaimed Bennett. "Miss Dodge has just been
telling me,--"

"Yes," interrupted Craig. "Look, Miss Dodge, this is it."

He handed her the letter. She almost seized it, examining it
carefully, her large eyes opening wider in wonder.

"This is certainly my writing and my notepaper," she murmured,
"but I never wrote the letter!"

Craig looked from the letter to her keenly. No one said a word.
For a moment Kennedy hesitated, thinking.

"Might I--er--see your room, Miss Dodge?" he asked at length.

Aunt Josephine frowned. Bennett and I could not conceal our
surprise.

"Why, certainly," nodded Elaine, as she led the way upstairs.

It was a dainty little room, breathing the spirit of its mistress.
In fact it seemed a sort of profanation as we all followed in
after her. For a moment Kennedy stood still, then he carefully
looked about. At the side of the bed, near the head, he stooped
and picked up something which he held in the palm of his hand. I
bent over. Something gleamed in the morning sunshine--some little
thin pieces of glass. As he tried deftly to fit the tiny little
bits together, he seemed absorbed in thought. Quickly he raised it
to his nose, as if to smell it.

"Ethyl chloride!" he muttered, wrapping the pieces carefully in a
paper and putting them into his pocket.

An instant later he crossed the room to the window and examined
it.

"Look!" he exclaimed.

There, plainly, were marks of a jimmy which had been inserted near
the lock to pry it open.

"Miss Dodge," he asked, "might I--might I trouble you to let me
see your arm?"

Wonderingly she did so and Kennedy bent almost reverently over her
plump arm examining it.

On it was a small dark discoloration, around which was a slight
redness and tenderness.

"That," he said slowly, "is the mark of a hypodermic needle."

As he finished examining Elaine's arm he drew the letter from his
pocket. Still facing her he said in a low tone, "Miss Dodge--you
did write this letter--but under the influence of the new
'twilight sleep.'"

We looked at one another amazed.

Outside, if we had been at the door in the hallway, we might have
seen the sinister-faced Michael listening. He turned and slipped
quietly away.

"Why, Craig," I exclaimed excitedly, "what do you mean?"

"Exactly what I say. With Miss Dodge's permission I shall show
you. By a small administration of the drug which will injure you
in no way, Miss Dodge, I think I can bring back the memory of all
that occurred to you last night. Will you allow me?"

"Mercy, no!" protested Aunt Josephine.

Craig and Elaine faced each other as they had the day before when
she had asked him whether the sudden warning of the Clutching Hand
would intimidate him. She advanced a step nearer. Elaine trusted
him.

"Elaine!" protested Aunt Josephine again.

"I want the experiment to be tried," she said quietly.

A moment later Kennedy had placed her in a wing chair in the
corner of the room.

"Now, Mrs. Dodge," he said, "please bring me a basin and a towel."

Aunt Josephine, reconciled, brought them. Kennedy dropped an
antiseptic tablet into the water and carefully sterilized Elaine's
arm just above the spot where the red mark showed. Then he drew
the hypodermic from his pocket--carefully sterilizing it, also,
and filling it with scopolamine from the bottle.

"Just a moment, Miss Dodge," he encouraged as he jabbed the needle
into her arm.

She did not wince.

"Please lie back on the couch," he directed. Then turning to us he
added, "It takes some time for this to work. Our criminal got over
that fact and prevented an outcry by using ethyl chloride first.
Let me reconstruct the scene."

As we watched Elaine going under slowly, Craig talked.

"That night," he said, "warily, the masked criminal of the
Clutching Hand might have been seen down below us in the alley. Up
here, Miss Dodge, worn out by the strain of her father's death,
let us say, was nervously trying to read, to do anything that
would take her mind off the tragedy. Perhaps she fell asleep.

"Just then the Clutching Hand appeared. He came stealthily through
that window which he had opened. A moment he hesitated, seeing
Elaine asleep. Then he tiptoed over to the bed, let us say, and
for a moment looked at her, sleeping.

"A second later he had thrust his hand into his pocket and had
taken out a small glass bulb with a long thin neck. That was ethyl
chloride, a drug which produces a quick anesthesia. But it lasts
only a minute or two. That was enough, As he broke the glass neck
of the bulb--letting the pieces fall on the floor near the bed--he
shoved the thing under Elaine's face, turning his own head away
and holding a handkerchief over his own nose. The mere heat of his
hand was enough to cause the ethyl chloride to spray out and
overcome her instantly. He stepped away from her a moment and
replaced the now empty vial in his pocket.

"Then he took a box from his pocket, opened it. There must have
been a syringe and a bottle of scopolamine. Where they came from I
do not know, but perhaps from some hospital. I shall have to find
that out later. He went to Elaine, quickly jabbing the needle,
with no resistance from her now. Slowly he replaced the bottle and
the needle in his pocket. He could not have been in any hurry now,
for it takes time for the drug to work."

Kennedy paused. Had we known at the time, Michael--he of the
sinister face--must have been in the hallway, careful that no one
saw him. A tap at the door and the Clutching Hand, that night,
must have beckoned him. A moment's parley and they separated--
Clutching Hand going back to Elaine, who was now under the
influence of the second drug.

"Our criminal," resumed Kennedy thoughtfully, "may have shaken
Elaine. She did not answer. Then he may have partly revived her.
She must have been startled. Clutching Hand, perhaps, was half
crouching, with a big ugly blue steel revolver leveled full in her
face.

"'One word and I shoot!' he probably cried. "Get up!'

"Trembling, she must have done so. 'Your slippers and a kimono,'
he would naturally have ordered. She put them on mechanically.
Then he must have ordered her to go out of the door and down the
stairs. Clutching Hand must have followed and as he did so he
would have cautiously put out the lights."

We were following, spell-bound, Kennedy's graphic reconstruction
of what must have happened. Evidently he had struck close to the
truth. Elaine's eyes were closed. Gently Kennedy led her along.
"Now, Miss Dodge," he encouraged, "try--try hard to recollect just
what it was that happened last night--everything."

As Kennedy paused after his quick recital, she seemed to tremble
all over. Slowly she began to speak. We stood awestruck. Kennedy
had been right!

The girl was now living over again those minutes that had been
forgotten--blotted out by the drug.

And it was all real to her, too,--terribly real. She was speaking,
plainly in terror.

"I see a man--oh, such a figure--with a mask. He holds a gun in my
face--he threatens me. I put on my kimono and slippers, as he
tells me. I am in a daze. I know what I am doing--and I don't
know. I go out with him, downstairs, into the library."

Elaine shuddered again at the recollection. "Ugh! The room is
dark, the room where he killed my father. Moonlight outside
streams in. This masked man and I come in. He switches on the
lights.

"'Go to the safe,' he says, and I do it, the new safe, you know.
'Do you know the combination?' he asks me. 'Yes,' I reply, too
frightened to say no.

"'Open it then,' he says, waving that awful revolver closer. I do
so. Hastily he rummages through it, throwing papers here and
there. But he seems not to find what he is after and turns away,
swearing fearfully.

"'Hang it!' he cries to me. 'Where else did your father keep
papers?' I point in desperation at the desk. He takes one last
look at the safe, shoves all the papers he has strewn on the floor
back again and slams the safe shut.

"'Now, come on!' he says, indicating with the gun that he wants me
to follow him away from the safe. At the desk he repeats the
search. But he finds nothing. Almost I think he is about to kill
me. 'Where else did your father keep papers?' he hisses fiercely,
still threatening me with the gun.

"I am too frightened to speak. But at last I am able to say, 'I--I
don't know!' Again he threatens me. 'As God is my judge,' I cry,
'I don't know.' It is fearful. Will he shoot me?

"Thank heaven! At last he believes me. But such a look of foiled
fury I have never seen on any human face before.

"'Sit down!' he growls, adding, 'at the desk.' I do.

"'Take some of your notepaper--the best.' I do that, too.

"'And a pen,' he goes on. My fingers can hardly hold it.

"'Now--write!' he says, and as he dictates, I write--"

"This?" interjected Kennedy, eagerly holding up the letter that he
had received from her.

Elaine looked it over with her drug-laden eyes. "Yes," she nodded,
then lapsed again to the scene itself. "He reads it over and as he
does so says, 'Now, address an envelope.' Himself he folds the
letter, seals the envelope, stamps it, and drops it into his
pocket, hastily straightening the desk.

"'Now, go ahead of me--again. Leave the room--no, by the hall
door. We are going back upstairs.' I obey him, and at the door he
switches off the lights. How I stand it, I don't know. I go
upstairs, mechanically, into my own room--I and this masked man.

"'Take off the kimono and slippers!' he orders. I do that. 'Get
into bed!' he growls. I crawl in fearfully. For a moment he looks
about,--then goes out--with a look back as he goes. Oh! Oh! That
hand--which he raises at me--THAT HAND!"

The poor girl was sitting bolt upright, staring straight at the
hall door, as we watched and listened, fascinated.

Kennedy was bending over, soothing her. She gave evidences of
coming out from the effect of the drug.

I noticed that Bennett had suddenly moved a step in the direction
of the door at which she stared.

"My God!" he muttered, staring, too. "Look!"

We did look. A letter was slowly being inserted under the door.

I took a quick step forward. That moment I felt a rough tug at my
arm, and a voice whispered, "Wait--you chump!"

It was Kennedy. He had whipped out his automatic and had carefully
leveled it at the door. Before he could fire, however, Bennett had
rushed ahead.

I followed. We looked down the hall. Sure enough, the figure of a
man could be seen disappearing around an angle. I followed Bennett
out of the door and down the hall.

Words cannot keep pace with what followed. Together we rushed to
the backstairs.

"Down there, while I go down the front!" cried Bennett.

I went down and he turned and went down the other flight. As he
did so, Craig followed him.

Suddenly, in the drawing room, I bumped into a figure on the other
side of the portieres. I seized him. We struggled. Rip! The
portieres came down, covering me entirely. Over and over we went,
smashing a lamp. It was vicious. Another man attacked me, too.

"I--I've got him--Kennedy!" I heard a voice pant over me.

A scream followed from Aunt Josephine. Suddenly the portieres were
pulled off me.

"The deuce!" puffed Kennedy. "It's Jameson!"

Bennett had rushed plump into me, coming the other way, hidden by
the portieres.

If we had known at the time, our Michael of the sinister face had
gained the library and was standing in the center of the room. He
had heard me coming and had fled to the drawing room. As we
finished our struggle in the library, he rose hastily from behind
the divan in the other room where he had dropped and had quietly
and hastily disappeared through another door.

Laughing and breathing hard, they helped me to my feet. It was no
joke to me. I was sore in every bone.

"Well, where DID he go?" insisted Bennett.

"I don't know--perhaps back there," I cried.

Bennett and I argued a moment, then started and stopped short.
Aunt Josephine had run downstairs and now was shoving the letter
into Craig's hands.

We gathered about him, curiously. He opened it. On it was that
awesome Clutching Hand again.

Kennedy read it. For a moment he stood and studied it, then slowly
crushed it in his hand.

Just then Elaine, pale and shaken from the ordeal she had
voluntarily gone through, burst in upon us from upstairs. Without
a word she advanced to Craig and took the letter from him.

Inside, as on the envelope, was that same signature of the
Clutching Hand.

Elaine gazed at it wild-eyed, then at Craig. Craig smilingly
reached for the note, took it, folded it and unconcernedly thrust
it into his pocket.

"My God!" she cried, clasping her hands convulsively and repeating
the words of the letter. "YOUR LAST WARNING!"




CHAPTER III

THE VANISHING JEWELS


Banging away at my typewriter, the next day, in Kennedy's
laboratory, I was startled by the sudden, insistent ringing of the
telephone near me.

"Hello," I answered, for Craig was at work at his table, trying
still to extract some clue from the slender evidence thus far
elicited in the Dodge mystery.

"Oh, Mr. Kennedy," I heard an excited voice over the wire reply,
"my friend, Susie Martin is here. Her father has just received a
message from that Clutching Hand and--"

"Just a moment, Miss Dodge," I interrupted. "This is Mr. Jameson."

"Oh!" came back the voice, breathless and disappointed. "Let me
have Mr. Kennedy--quick."

I had already passed the telephone to Craig and was watching him
keenly as he listened over it. The anticipation of a message from
Elaine did not fade, yet his face grew grave as he listened.

He motioned to me for a pad and pencil that lay near me.

"Please read the letter again, slower, Miss Dodge," he asked,
adding, "There isn't time for me to see it--just yet. But I want
it exactly. You say it is made up of separate words and type cut
from newspapers and pasted on note paper?"

I handed him paper and pencil.

"All right now, Miss Dodge, go ahead."

As he wrote, he indicated to me by his eyes that he wanted me to
read. I did so:

"Sturtevant Martin, Jeweler, "739 1/2 Fifth Ave., "New York City.

"SIR:

"As you have failed to deliver the $10,000, I shall rob your main
diamond case at exactly noon today."

"Thank you, Miss Dodge," continued Kennedy, laying down the
pencil. "Yes, I understand perfectly--signed by that same
Clutching Hand. Let me see," he pondered, looking at his watch.
"It is now just about half past eleven. Very well. I shall meet
you and Miss Martin at Mr. Martin's store directly."

It lacked five minutes of noon when Kennedy and I dashed up before
Martin's and dismissed our taxi-cab.

A remarkable scene greeted us as we entered the famous jewelry
shop. Involuntarily I drew back. Squarely in front of us a man had
suddenly raised a revolver and leveled it at us.

"Don't!" cried a familiar voice. "That is Mr. Kennedy!"

Just then, from a little knot of people, Elaine Dodge sprang
forward with a cry and seized the gun.

Kennedy turned to her, apparently not half so much concerned about
the automatic that yawned at him as about the anxiety of the
pretty girl who had intervened. The too eager plainclothesman
lowered the gun sheepishly.

Sturtevant Martin was a typical society business man, quietly but
richly dressed. He was inclined to be pompous and affected a pair
of rather distinguished looking side whiskers.

In the excitement I glanced about hurriedly. There were two or
three policemen in the shop and several plainclothesmen, some
armed with formidable looking sawed-off shot guns.

Directly in front of me was a sign, tacked up on a pillar, which
read, "This store will be closed at noon today. Martin & Co."

All the customers were gone. In fact the clerks had had some
trouble in clearing the shop, as many of them expressed not only
surprise but exasperation at the proceeding. Nevertheless the
clerks had politely but insistently ushered them out.

Martin himself was evidently very nervous and very much alarmed.
Indeed no one could blame him for that. Merely to have been
singled out by this amazing master criminal was enough to cause
panic. Already he had engaged detectives, prepared for whatever
might happen, and they had advised him to leave the diamonds in
the counter, clear the store, and let the crooks try anything, if
they dared.

I fancied that he was somewhat exasperated at his daughter's
presence, too, but could see that her explanation of Elaine's and
Perry Bennett's interest in the Clutching Hand had considerably
mollified him. He had been talking with Bennett as we came in and
evidently had a high respect for the young lawyer.

Just back of us, and around the corner, as we came in, we had
noticed a limousine which had driven up. Three faultlessly attired
dandies had entered a doorway down the street, as we learned
afterwards, apparently going to a fashionable tailor's which
occupied the second floor of the old-fashioned building, the first
floor having been renovated and made ready for renting. Had we
been there a moment sooner we might have seen, I suppose, that one
of them nodded to a taxicab driver who was standing at a public
hack stand a few feet up the block. The driver nodded
unostentatiously back to the men.

In spite of the excitement, Kennedy quietly examined the show
case, which was, indeed, a veritable treasure store of brilliants.
Then with a keen scrutinizing glance he looked over the police and
detectives gathered around. There was nothing to do now but wait,
as the detectives had advised.

I looked at a large antique grandfather's clock which was standing
nearby. It now lacked scarcely a minute of twelve.

Slowly the hands of the clock came nearer together at noon.

We all gathered about the show case with its glittering hoard of
wealth, forming a circle at a respectful distance.

Martin pointed nervously at the clock.

In deep-lunged tones the clock played the chords written, I
believe, by Handel. Then it began striking.

As it did so, Martin involuntarily counted off the strokes, while
one of the plainclothesmen waved his shotgun in unison.

Martin finished counting.

Nothing had happened.

We all breathed a sigh of relief.

"Well, it is still there!" exclaimed Martin, pointing at the show-
case, with a forced laugh.

Suddenly came a rending and crashing sound. It seemed as if the
very floor on which we stood was giving way.

The show-case, with all its priceless contents, went smashing down
into the cellar below.

The flooring beneath the case had been cut through!

All crowded forward, gazing at the black yawning cavern. A moment
we hesitated, then gingerly craned our necks over the edge.

Down below, three men, covered with linen dusters and their faces
hidden by masks, had knocked the props away from the ceiling of
the cellar, which they had sawed almost through at their leisure,
and the show case had landed eight or ten feet below, shivered
into a thousand bits.

A volley of shots whizzed past us, and another. While one crook
was hastily stuffing the untold wealth of jewels into a burlap
bag, the others had drawn revolvers and were firing up through the
hole in the floor, desperately.

Martin, his detectives, and the rest of us fell back from the edge
of the chasm hastily, to keep out of range of the hail of bullets.

"Look out!" cried someone behind us, before we could recover from
our first surprise and return the fire.

One of the desperadoes had taken a bomb from under his duster,
lighted it, and thrown it up through the hole in the floor.

It sailed up over our heads and landed near our little group on
the floor, the fuse sputtering ominously.

Quickly we divided and backed away even further.

I heard an exclamation of fear from Elaine.

Kennedy had pushed his way past us and picked up the deadly
infernal machine in his bare hands.

I watched him, fascinated. As near as he dared, he approached the
hole in the floor, still holding the thing off at arm's length.
Would he never throw it?

He was coolly holding it, allowing the fuse to burn down closer to
the explosion point.

It was now within less than an inch sure death.

Suddenly he raised it and hurled the deadly thing down through the
hole.

We could hear the imprecations of the crooks as it struck the
cellar floor, near them. They had evidently been still cramming
jewelry into the capacious maw of the bag. One of them,
discovering the bomb, must have advanced toward it, then retreated
when he saw how imminent was the explosion.

"Leave the store--quick!" rang out Kennedy's voice.

We backed away as fast as those behind us would permit. Kennedy
and Bennett were the last to leave, in fact paused at the door.

Down below the crooks were beating a hasty retreat through a
secret entrance which they had effected.

"The bag! The bag!" we could hear one of them bellow.

"The bomb--run!" cried another voice gruffly.

A second later came an ominous silence. The last of the three must
have fled.

The explosion that followed lifted us fairly off our feet. A great
puff of smoke came belching up through the hole, followed by the
crashing of hundreds of dollars' worth of glass ware in the
jewelry shop as fragments of stone, brick and mortar and huge
splinters of wood were flung with tremendous force in every
direction from the miniature volcano.

As the smoke from the explosion cleared away, Kennedy could be
seen, the first to run forward.

Meanwhile Martin's detectives had rushed down a flight of back
stairs that led into a coal cellar. With coal shovels and bars,
anything they could lay hands on, they attacked the door that
opened forward from the coal cellar into the front basement where
the robbers had been.

A moment Kennedy and Bennett paused on the brink of the abyss
which the bomb had made, waiting for the smoke to decrease. Then
they began to climb down cautiously over the piled up wreckage.

The explosion had set the basement afire, but the fire had not
gained much headway, by the time they reached the basement.
Quickly Kennedy ran to the door into the coal cellar and opened
it.

From the other side, Martin, followed by the police and the
detectives, burst in.

"Fire!" cried one of the policemen, leaping back to turn in an
alarm from the special apparatus upstairs.

All except Martin began beating out the flames, using such weapons
as they already held in their hands to batter down the door.

To Martin there was one thing paramount--the jewels.

In the midst of the confusion, Elaine, closely followed by her
friend Susie, made her way fearlessly into the stifle of smoke
down the stairs.

"There are your jewels, Mr. Martin," cried Kennedy, kicking the
precious burlap bag with his foot as if it had been so much
ordinary merchandise, and turning toward what was in his mind the
most important thing at stake--the direction taken by the agents
of the Clutching Hand.

"Thank heaven!" ejaculated Martin, fairly pouncing on the bag and
tearing it open. "They didn't get away with them--after all!" he
exclaimed, examining the contents with satisfaction. "See--you
must have frightened them off at just the right moment when you
sent the bomb back at them."

Elaine and Susie pressed forward eagerly as he poured forth the
sparkling stream of gems, intact.

"Wasn't he just simply wonderful!" I heard Susie whisper to
Elaine.

Elaine did not answer. She had eyes or ears for nothing now in the
melee but Kennedy.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Events were moving rapidly.

The limousine had been standing innocently enough at the curb near
the corner, with the taxicab close behind it.

Less than ten minutes after they had entered, three well-dressed
men came out of the vacant shop, apparently from the tailor's
above, and climbed leisurely into their car.

As the last one entered, he half turned to the taxicab driver,
hiding from passers-by the sign of the Clutching Hand which the
taxicab driver returned, in the same manner. Then the big car
whirled up the avenue.

All this we learned later from a street sweeper who was at work
nearby.

Down below, while the police and detectives were putting out the
fire, Kennedy was examining the wall of the cellar, looking for
the spot where the crooks had escaped.

"A secret door!" he exclaimed, as he paused after tapping along
the wall to determine its character. "You can see how the force of
the explosion has loosened it."

Sure enough, when he pointed it out to us, it was plainly visible.
One of the detectives picked up a crowbar and others, still with
the hastily selected implements they had seized to fight the fire,
started in to pry it open.

As it yielded, Kennedy pushed his way through. Elaine, always
utterly fearless, followed. Then the rest of us went through.

There seemed to be nothing, however, that would help us in the
cellar next door, and Kennedy mounted the steps of a stairway in
the rear.

The stairway led to a sort of storeroom, full of barrels and
boxes, but otherwise characterless. When I arrived Kennedy was
gingerly holding up the dusters which the crooks had worn.

"We're on the right trail," commented Elaine as he showed them to
her, "but where do you suppose the owners are?"

Craig shrugged his shoulders and gave a quick look about.
"Evidently they came in from and went away by the street," he
observed, hurrying to the door, followed by Elaine.

On the sidewalk, he gazed up the avenue, then catching sight of
the street cleaner, called to him.

"Yes, sir," replied the man, stolidly looking up from his work. "I
see three gentlemen come out and get into an automobile."

"Which way did they go?" asked Kennedy.

For answer the man jerked his thumb over his shoulder in the
general direction uptown.

"Did you notice the number of the car?" asked Craig eagerly.

The man shrugged his shoulders blankly.

With keen glance, Kennedy strained his eyes. Far up the avenue, he
could descry the car threading its way in and out among the
others, just about disappearing.

A moment later Craig caught sight of the vacant taxicab and
crooked his finger at the driver, who answered promptly by
cranking his engine.

"You saw that limousine standing there?" asked Craig.

"Yes," nodded the chauffeur with a show of alertness.

"Well, follow it," ordered Kennedy, jumping into the cab.

"Yes, sir."

Craig was just about to close the door when a slight figure
flashed past us and a dainty foot was placed on the step.

"Please, Mr. Kennedy," pleaded Elaine, "let me go. They may lead
to my father's slayer."

She said it so earnestly that Craig could scarcely have resisted
if he had wanted to do so.

Just as Elaine and Kennedy were moving off, I came out of the
vacant store, with Bennett and the detectives.

"Craig!" I called. "Where are you going?"

Kennedy stuck his head out of the window and I am quite sure that
he was not altogether displeased that I was not with him.

"Chasing that limousine," he shouted back. "Follow us in another
car."

A moment later he and Elaine were gone.

Bennett and I looked about.

"There are a couple of cabs--down there," I pointed out at the
other end of the block. "I'll take one you take the other."

Followed by a couple of the detectives, I jumped into the first
one I came to, excitedly telling the driver to follow Kennedy's
taxi, directing him with my head out of the window.

"Mr. Jameson, please--can't I go with you?"

I turned. It was Susie Martin. "One of you fellows, go in the
other car," I asked the detectives.

Before the man could move, Mr. Martin himself appeared.

"No, Susan, I--I won't allow it," he ordered.

"But Elaine went," she pouted.

"Well, Elaine is--ah--I won't have it," stormed Martin.

There was no time to waste. With a hasty apology, I drove off.

Who, besides Bennett, went in the other car, I don't know, but it
made no difference, for we soon lost them. Our driver, however,
was a really clever fellow. Far ahead now we could see the
limousine drive around a corner, making a dangerous swerve.
Kennedy's cab followed, skidding dangerously near a pole.

But the taxicab was no match for the powerful limousine. On uptown
they went, the only thing preventing the limousine from escaping
being the fear of pursuit by traffic police if the driver let out
speed. They were content to manage to keep just far enough ahead
to be out of danger of having Kennedy overhaul them. As for us, we
followed as best we could, on uptown, past the city line, and out
into the country.

There Kennedy lost sight altogether of the car he was trailing.
Worse than that, we lost sight of Kennedy. Still we kept on
blindly, trusting to luck and common sense in picking the road.

I was peering ahead over the driver's shoulder, the window down,
trying to direct him, when we approached a fork in the road. Here
was a dilemma which must be decided at once rightly or wrongly.

As we neared the crossroad, I gave an involuntary exclamation.
Beside the road, almost on it, lay the figure of a man. Our driver
pulled up with a jerk and I was out of the car in an instant.

There lay Kennedy! Someone had blackjacked him. He was groaning
and just beginning to show signs of consciousness as I bent over.

"What's the matter, old man?" I asked, helping him to his feet.

He looked about dazed a moment, then seeing me and comprehending,
he pointed excitedly, but vaguely.

"Elaine!" he cried. "They've kidnapped Elaine!"

What had really happened, as we learned later from Elaine and
others, was that when the cross roads was reached, the three
crooks in the limousine had stopped long enough to speak to an
accomplice stationed there, according to their plan for a getaway.
He was a tough looking individual who might have been hoboing it
to the city.

When, a few minutes later, Kennedy and Elaine had approached the
fork, their driver had slowed up, as if in doubt which way to go.
Craig had stuck his head out of the window, as I had done, and,
seeing the crossroads, had told the chauffeur to stop. There stood
the hobo.

"Did a car pass here, just now--a big car?" called Craig.

The man put his hand to his ear, as if only half comprehending.

"Which way did the big car go?" repeated Kennedy.

The hobo approached the taxicab sullenly, as if he had a grudge
against cars in general.

One question after another elicited little that could be construed
as intelligence. If Craig had only been able to see, he would have
found out that, with his back toward the taxicab driver, the hobo
held one hand behind him and made the sign of the Clutching Hand,
glancing surreptitiously at the driver to catch the answering
sign, while Craig gazed earnestly up the two roads.

At last Craig gave him up as hopeless. "Well--go ahead--that way,"
he indicated, picking the most likely road.

As the chauffeur was about to start, he stalled his engine.

"Hurry!" urged Craig, exasperated at the delays.

The driver got out and tried to crank the engine. Again and again
he turned it over, but, somehow, it refused to start. Then he
lifted the hood and began to tinker.

"What's the matter?" asked Craig, impatiently jumping out and
bending over the engine, too.

The driver shrugged his shoulders. "Must be something wrong with
the ignition, I guess," he replied.

Kennedy looked the car over hastily. "I can't see anything wrong,"
he frowned.

"Well, there is," growled the driver.

Precious minutes were speeding away, as they argued. Finally with
his characteristic energy, Kennedy put the taxicab driver aside.

"Let me try it," he said. "Miss Dodge, will you arrange that spark
and throttle?"

Elaine, equal to anything, did so, and Craig bent down and cranked
the engine. It started on the first spin.

"See!" he exclaimed. "There wasn't anything, after all."

He took a step toward the taxicab.

"Say," objected the driver, nastily, interposing himself between
Craig and the wheel which he seemed disposed to take now, "who's
running this boat, anyhow?"

Surprised, Kennedy tried to shoulder the fellow out of the way.
The driver resisted sullenly.

"Mr. Kennedy--look out!" cried Elaine.

Craig turned. But it was too late. The rough looking fellow had
wakened to life. Suddenly he stepped up behind Kennedy with a
blackjack. As the heavy weight descended, Craig crumpled up on the
ground, unconscious.

With a scream, Elaine turned and started to run. But the chauffeur
seized her arm.

"Say, bo," he asked of the rough fellow, "what does Clutching Hand
want with her? Quick! There's another cab likely to be along in a
moment with that fellow Jameson in it."

The rough fellow, with an oath, seized her and dragged her into
the taxicab. "Go ahead!" he growled, indicating the road.

And away they sped, leaving Kennedy unconscious on the side of the
road where we found him.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

"What are we to do?" I asked helplessly of Kennedy, when we had at
last got him on his feet.

His head still ringing from the force of the blow of the
blackjack, Craig stooped down, then knelt in the dust of the road,
then ran ahead a bit where it was somewhat muddy.

"Which way--which way?" he muttered to himself.

I thought perhaps the blow had affected him and leaned over to see
what he was doing. Instead, he was studying the marks made by the
tire of the Clutching Hand cab. Very decidedly, there in the road,
the little anti-skid marks on the tread of the tire showed--some
worn, some cut--but with each revolution the same marks
reappearing unmistakably. More than that, it was an unusual make
of tire. Craig was actually studying the finger prints, so to
speak, of an automobile!

More slowly now and carefully, we proceeded, for a mistake meant
losing the trail of Elaine. Kennedy absolutely refused to get
inside our cab, but clung tightly to a metal rod outside while he
stood on the running board--now straining his eyes along the road
to catch any faint glimpse of either taxi or limousine, or the
dust from them, now gazing intently at the ground following the
finger prints of the taxicab that was carrying off Elaine. All
pain was forgotten by him now in the intensity of his anxiety for
her.

We came to another crossroads and the driver glanced at Craig.
"Stop!" he ordered.

In another instant he was down in the dirt, examining the road for
marks.

"That way!" he indicated, leaping back to the running board.

We piled back into the car and proceeded under Kennedy's
direction, as fast as he would permit. So it continued, perhaps
for a couple of hours.

At last Kennedy stopped the cab and slowly directed the driver to
veer into an open space that looked peculiarly lonesome. Near it
stood a one story brick factory building, closed, but not
abandoned.

As I looked about at the unattractive scene, Kennedy already was
down on his knees in the dirt again, studying the tire tracks.
They were all confused, showing that the taxicab we were following
had evidently backed in and turned several times before going on.

"Crossed by another set of tire tracks!" he exclaimed excitedly,
studying closer. "That must have been the limousine, waiting."

Laboriously he was following the course of the cars in the open
space, when the one word escaped him, "Footprints!"

He was up and off in a moment, before we could imagine what he was
after. We had got out of the cab, and followed him as, down to the
very shore of a sort of cove or bay, he went. There lay a rusty,
discarded boiler on the beach, half submerged in the rising tide.
At this tank the footprints seemed to go right down the sand and
into the waves which were slowly obliterating them. Kennedy gazed
out as if to make out a possible boat on the horizon, where the
cove widened out.

"Look!" he cried.

Farther down the shore, a few feet, I had discovered the same
prints, going in the opposite direction, back toward the place
from which we had just come. I started to follow them, but soon
found myself alone. Kennedy had paused beside the old boiler.

"What is it?" I asked, retracing my steps.

He did not answer, but seemed to be listening. We listened also.
There certainly was a most peculiar noise inside that tank.

Was it a muffled scream?

Kennedy reached down and picked up a rock, hitting the tank a
resounding blow. As the echo died down, he listened again.

Yes, there was a sound--a scream perhaps--a woman's voice, faint,
but unmistakable.

I looked at his face inquiringly. Without a word I read in it the
confirmation of the thought that had flashed into my mind.

Elaine Dodge was inside!

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

First had come the limousine, with its three bandits, to the spot
fixed on as a rendezvous. Later had come the taxicab. As it hove
into sight, the three well-dressed crooks had drawn revolvers,
thinking perhaps the plan for getting rid of Kennedy might
possibly have miscarried. But the taxicab driver and the rough-
faced fellow had reassured them with the sign of the Clutching
Hand, and the revolvers were lowered.

As they parleyed hastily, the rough-neck and the fake chauffeur
lifted Elaine out of the taxi. She was bound and gagged.

"Well, now we've got her, what shall we do with her?" asked one.

"It's got to be quick. There's another cab," put in the driver.

"The deuce with that."

"The deuce with nothing," he returned. "That fellow Kennedy's a
clever one. He may come to. If he does, he won't miss us. Quick,
now!"

"I wish I'd broken his skull," muttered the roughneck.

"We'd better leave her somewhere here," remarked one of the
better-dressed three. "I don't think the chief wants us to kill
her--yet," he added, with an ominous glance at Elaine, who in
spite of threats was not cowed, but was vainly struggling at her
bonds.

"Well, where shall it be?" asked another.

They looked about.

"See," cried the third. "See that old boiler down there at the
edge of the water? Why not put her in there? No one'll ever think
to look in such a place."

Down by the water's edge, where he pointed, lay a big boiler such
as is used on stationary engines, with its end lapped by the
waves. With a hasty expression of approval, the rough-neck picked
Elaine up bodily, still struggling vainly, and together they
carried her, bound and gagged, to the tank. The opening, which was
toward the water, was small, but they managed, roughly, to thrust
her in.

A moment later and they had rolled up a huge boulder against the
small entrance, bracing it so that it would be impossible for her
to get out from the inside. Then they drove off hastily.

Inside the old boiler lay Elaine, still bound and gagged. If she
could only scream! Someone might hear. She must get help. There
was water in the tank. She managed to lean up inside it, standing
as high as the walls would allow her, trying to keep her head
above the water.

Frantically, she managed to loosen the gag. She screamed. Her
voice seemed to be bound around by the iron walls as was she
herself. She shuddered, The water was rising--had reached her
chest, and was still rising, slowly, inexorably.

What should she do? Would no one hear her? The water was up to her
neck now. She held her head as high as she could and screamed
again.

What was that? Silence? Or was someone outside?

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Coolly, in spite of the emergency, Kennedy took in the perilous
situation.

The lower end of the boiler, which was on a slant on the rapidly
shelving beach, was now completely under water and impossible to
get at. Besides, the opening was small, too small.

We pulled away the stone, but that did no good. No one could hope
to get in and then out again that way alive--much less with a
helpless girl. Yet something must be done. The tank was
practically submerged inside, as I estimated quickly. Blows had no
effect on the huge iron trap which had been built to resist many
pounds of pressure.

Kennedy gazed about frantically and his eye caught the sign on the
factory:

OXYACETYLENE WELDING CO.

"Come, Walter," he cried, running up the shore.

A moment later, breathless, we reached the doorway. It was, of
course, locked. Kennedy whipped out his revolver and several well-
directed shots through the keyhole smashed the lock. We put our
shoulders to it and swung the door open, entering the factory.

There was not a soul about, not even a watchman. Hastily we took
in the place, a forge and a number of odds and ends of metal
sheets, rods, pipes and angles.

Beside a workbench stood two long cylinders, studded with bolts.

"That's what I'm looking for," exclaimed Craig. "Here, Walter,
take one. I'll take the other--and the tubes--and--"

He did not pause to finish, but seized up a peculiar shaped
instrument, like a huge hook, with a curved neck and sharp beak.
Really it was composed of two metal tubes which ran into a
cylinder or mixing chamber above the nozzle, while parallel to
them ran another tube with a nozzle of its own.

We ran, for there was no time to lose. As nearly as I could
estimate it, the water must now be slowly closing over Elaine.

"What is it?" I asked as he joined up the tubes from the tanks to
the peculiar hook-like apparatus he carried.

"An oxyacetylene blowpipe," he muttered back feverishly working.
"Used for welding and cutting, too," he added.

With a light he touched the nozzle. Instantly a hissing, blinding
flame-needle made the steel under it incandescent. The terrific
heat from one nozzle made the steel glow. The stream of oxygen
from the second completely consumed the hot metal. And the force
of the blast carried a fine spray of disintegrated metal before
it. It was a brilliant sight. But it was more than that. Through
the very steel itself, the flame, thousands of degrees hot, seemed
to eat its way in a fine line, as if it were a sharp knife cutting
through ordinary cardboard.

With tense muscles Kennedy skillfully guided the terrible
instrument that ate cold steel, wielding the torch as deftly as if
it had been, as indeed it was, a magic wand of modern science.

He was actually cutting out a huge hole in the still exposed
surface of the tank--all around, except for a few inches, to
prevent the heavy piece from falling inward.

As Kennedy carefully bent outward the section of the tank which he
had cut, he quickly reached down and lifted Elaine, unconscious,
out of the water.

Gently he laid her on the sand. It was the work of only a moment
to cut the cords that bound her hands.

There she lay, pale and still. Was she dead?

Kennedy worked frantically to revive her.

At last, slowly, the color seemed to return to her pale lips. Her
eyelids fluttered. Then her great, deep eyes opened.

As she looked up and caught sight of Craig bending anxiously over
her, she seemed to comprehend. For a moment both were silent. Then
Elaine reached up and took his hand.

There was much in the look she gave him--admiration, confidence,--
love itself.

Heroics, however, were never part of Kennedy's frank make-up. The
fact was that her admiration, even though not spoken, plainly
embarrassed him. Yet he forgot that as he looked at her lying
there, frail and helpless.

He stroked her forehead gently, laying back the wet ringlets of
her hair.

"Craig," she murmured, "you--you've saved my life!"

Her tone was eloquent.

"Elaine," he whispered, still gazing into her wonderful eyes, "the
Clutching Hand shall pay for this! It is a fight to the finish
between us!"




CHAPTER IV

"THE FROZEN SAFE"


Kennedy swung open the door of our taxicab as we pulled up, safe
at last, before the Dodge mansion, after the rescue of Elaine from
the brutal machinations of the Clutching Hand.

Bennett was on the step of the cab in a moment and, together, one
on each side of Elaine, they assisted her out of the car and up
the steps to the house.

As they mounted the steps, Kennedy called back to me, "Pay the
driver, Walter, please."

It was the first time I had thought of that. As it happened, I had
quite a bankroll with me and, in my hurry, I peeled off a ten
dollar bill and tossed it to the fellow, intending to be generous
and tell him to keep the change.

"Say," he exclaimed, pointing to the clock, "come across--twenty-
three, sixty."

Protesting, I peeled off some more bills.

Having satisfied this veritable anaconda and gorged his dilating
appetite for banknotes, I turned to follow the others. Jennings
had opened the door immediately. Whether it was that he retained a
grudge against me or whether he did not see me, he would have
closed it before I could get up there. I called and took the steps
two at a time.

Elaine's Aunt Josephine was waiting for us in the drawing room,
very much worried. The dear old lady was quite scandalized as
Elaine excitedly told of the thrilling events that had just taken
place.

"And to think they--actually--carried you!" she exclaimed,
horrified, adding, "And I not--"

"But Mr. Kennedy came along and saved me just in time,"
interrupted Elaine with a smile. "I was well chaperoned!"

Aunt Josephine turned to Craig gratefully. "How can I ever thank
you enough, Mr. Kennedy," she said fervently.

Kennedy was quite embarrassed. With a smile, Elaine perceived his
discomfiture, not at all displeased by it.

"Come into the library," she cried gaily, taking his arm. "I've
something to show you."

Where the old safe which had been burnt through had stood was now
a brand new safe of the very latest construction and design--one
of those that look and are so formidable.

"Here is the new safe," she pointed out brightly. "It is not only
proof against explosives, but between the plates is a lining that
is proof against thermit and even that oxy-acetylene blowpipe by
which you rescued me from the old boiler. It has a time lock, too,
that will prevent its being opened at night, even if anyone should
learn the combination."

They stood before the safe a moment and Kennedy examined it
closely with much interest.

"Wonderful!" he admired.

"I knew you'd approve of it," cried Elaine, much pleased. "Now I
have something else to show you."

She paused at the desk and from a drawer took out a portfolio of
large photographs. They were very handsome photographs of herself.

"Much more wonderful than the safe," remarked Craig earnestly.
Then, hesitating and a trifle embarrassed, he added, "May I--may I
have one?"

"If you care for it," she said, dropping her eyes, then glancing
up at him quickly.

"Care for it?" he repeated. "It will be one of the greatest
treasures."

She slipped the picture quickly into an envelope. "Come," she
interrupted. "Aunt Josephine will be wondering where we are. She--
she's a demon chaperone."

Bennett, Aunt Josephine and myself were talking earnestly as
Elaine and Craig returned.

"Well," said Bennett, glancing at his watch and rising as he
turned to Elaine, "I'm afraid I must go, now."

He crossed over to where she stood and shook hands. There was no
doubt that Bennett was very much smitten by his fair client.

"Good-bye, Mr. Bennett," she murmured, "and thank you so much for
what you have done for me today."

But there was something lifeless about the words. She turned
quickly to Craig, who had remained standing.

"Must you go, too, Mr. Kennedy?" she asked, noticing his position.

"I'm afraid Mr. Jameson and I must be back on the job before this
Clutching Hand gets busy again," he replied reluctantly.

"Oh, I hope you--we get him soon!" she exclaimed, and there was
nothing lifeless about the way she gave Craig her hand, as
Bennett, he and I left a moment later.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

That morning I had noticed Kennedy fussing some time at the door
of our apartment before we went over to the laboratory. As nearly
as I could make out he had placed something under the rug at the
door out into the hallway.

When we approached our door, now, Craig paused. By pressing a
little concealed button he caused a panel in the wall outside to
loosen, disclosing a small, boxlike plate in the wall underneath.

It was about a foot long and perhaps four inches wide. Through it
ran a piece of paper which unrolled from one coil and wound up on
another, actuated by clockwork. Across the blank white paper ran
an ink line traced by a stylographic pen, such as I had seen in
mechanical pencils used in offices, hotels, banks and such places.

Kennedy examined the thing with interest.

"What is it?" I asked.

"A new seismograph," he replied, still gazing carefully at the
rolled up part of the paper. "I have installed it because it
registers every footstep on the floor of our apartment. We can't
be too careful with this Clutching Hand. I want to know whether we
have any visitors or not in our absence. This straight line
indicates that we have not. Wait a moment."

Craig hastily unlocked the door and entered. Inside, I could see
him pacing up and down our modest quarters.

"Do you see anything, Walter?" he called.

I looked at the seismograph. The pen had started to trace its
line, no longer even and straight, but zigzag, at different
heights across the paper.

He came to the door. "What do you think of it?" he inquired.

"Splendid idea," I answered enthusiastically.

Our apartment was, as I have said, modest, consisting of a large
living room, two bedrooms, and bath--an attractive but not ornate
place, which we found very cosy and comfortable. On one side of
the room was a big fire place, before which stood a fire screen.
We had collected easy chairs and capacious tables and desks. Books
were scattered about, literally overflowing from the crowded
shelves. On the walls were our favorite pictures, while for
ornament, I suppose I might mention my typewriter and now and then
some of Craig's wonderful scientific apparatus as satisfying our
limited desire for the purely aesthetic.

We entered and fell to work at the aforementioned typewriter, on a
special Sunday story that I had been forced to neglect. I was not
so busy, however, that I did not notice out of the corner of my
eye that Kennedy had taken from its cover Elaine Dodge's picture
and was gazing at it ravenously.

I put my hand surreptitiously over my mouth and coughed. Kennedy
wheeled on me and I hastily banged a sentence out on the machine,
making at least half a dozen mistakes.

I had finished as much of the article as I could do then and was
smoking and reading it over. Kennedy was still gazing at the
picture Miss Dodge had given him, then moving from place to place
about the room, evidently wondering where it would look best. I
doubt whether he had done another blessed thing since we returned.

He tried it on the mantel. That wouldn't do. At last he held it up
beside a picture of Galton, I think, of finger print and eugenics
fame, who hung on the wall directly opposite the fireplace.
Hastily he compared the two. Elaine's picture was of precisely the
same size.

Next he tore out the picture of the scientist and threw it
carelessly into the fireplace. Then he placed Elaine's picture in
its place and hung it up again, standing off to admire it.

I watched him gleefully. Was this Craig? Purposely I moved my
elbow suddenly and pushed a book with a bang on the floor. Kennedy
actually jumped. I picked up the book with a muttered apology. No,
this was not the same old Craig.

Perhaps half an hour later, I was still reading. Kennedy was now
pacing up and down the room, apparently unable to concentrate his
mind on any but one subject.

He stopped a moment before the photograph, looked at it fixedly.
Then he started his methodical walk again, hesitated, and went
over to the telephone, calling a number which I recognized.

"She must have been pretty well done up by her experience," he
said apologetically, catching my eye. "I was wondering if--Hello--
oh, Miss Dodge--I--er--I--er--just called up to see if you were
all right."

Craig was very much embarrassed, but also very much in earnest.

A musical laugh rippled over the telephone. "Yes, I'm all right,
thank you, Mr. Kennedy--and I put the package you sent me into the
safe, but--"

"Package?" frowned Craig. "Why, I sent you no package, Miss Dodge.
In the safe?"

"Why, yes, and the safe is all covered with moisture--and so
cold."

"Moisture--cold?" he repeated quickly.

"Yes, I have been wondering if it is all right. In fact, I was
going to call you up, only I was afraid you'd think I was
foolish."

"I shall be right over," he answered hastily, clapping the
receiver back on its hook. "Walter," he added, seizing his hat and
coat, "come on--hurry!"

A few minutes later we drove up in a taxi before the Dodge house
and rang the bell.

Jennings admitted us sleepily.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

It could not have been long after we left Miss Dodge late in the
afternoon that Susie Martin, who had been quite worried over our
long absence after the attempt to rob her father, dropped in on
Elaine. Wide-eyed, she had listened to Elaine's story of what had
happened.

"And you think this Clutching Hand has never recovered the
incriminating papers that caused him to murder your father?" asked
Susie.

Elaine shook her head. "No. Let me show you the new safe I've
bought. Mr. Kennedy thinks it wonderful."

"I should think you'd be proud of it," admired Susie. "I must tell
father to get one, too."

At that very moment, if they had known it, the Clutching Hand with
his sinister, masked face, was peering at the two girls from the
other side of the portieres.

Susie rose to go and Elaine followed her to the door. No sooner
had she gone than the Clutching Hand came out from behind the
curtains. He gazed about a moment, then moving over to the safe
about which the two girls had been talking, stealthily examined
it.

He must have heard someone coming, for, with a gesture of hate at
the safe itself, as though he personified it, he slipped back of
the curtains again.

Elaine had returned and as she sat down at the desk to go over
some papers which Bennett had left relative to settling up the
estate, the masked intruder stealthily and silently withdrew.

"A package for you, Miss Dodge," announced Michael later in the
evening as Elaine, in her dainty evening gown, was still engaged
in going over the papers. He carried it in his hands rather
gingerly.

"Mr. Kennedy sent it, ma'am. He says it contains clues and will
you please put it in the new safe for him."

Elaine took the package eagerly and examined it. Then she pulled
open the heavy door of the safe.

"It must be getting cold out, Michael," she remarked. "This
package is as cold as ice."

"It is, ma'am," answered Michael, deferentially with a sidelong
glance that did not prevent his watching her intently.

She closed the safe and, with a glance at her watch, set the time
lock and went upstairs to her room.

No sooner had Elaine disappeared than Michael appeared again, cat-
like, through the curtains from the drawing room, and, after a
glance about the dimly lighted library, discovering that the coast
was clear, motioned to a figure hiding behind the portieres.

A moment, and Clutching Hand himself came out.

He moved over to the safe and looked it over. Then he put out his
hand and touched it.

"Good, Michael," he exclaimed with satisfaction.

"Listen!" cautioned Michael.

Someone was coming and they hastily slunk behind the protecting
portieres. It was Marie, Elaine's maid.

She turned up the lights and went over to the desk for a book for
which Elaine had evidently sent her. She paused and appeared to be
listening. Then she went to the door.

"Jennings!" she beckoned.

"What is it, Marie?" he replied.

She said nothing, but as he came up the hall led him to the center
of the room.

"Listen! I heard sighs and groans!"

Jennings looked at her a moment, puzzled, then laughed. "You
girls!" he exclaimed. "I suppose you'll always think the library
haunted, now."

"But, Jennings, listen," she persisted.

Jennings did listen. Sure enough, there were sounds, weird,
uncanny. He gazed about the room. It was eerie. Then he took a few
steps toward the safe. Marie put out her hand to it, and started
back.

"Why, that safe is all covered with cold sweat!" she cried with
bated breath.

Sure enough the face of the safe was beaded with dampness.
Jennings put his hand on it and quickly drew it away, leaving a
mark on the dampness.

"Wh-what do you think of that?" he gasped.

"I'm going to tell Miss Dodge," cried Marie, genuinely frightened.

A moment later she burst into Elaine's room.

"What is the matter, Marie?" asked Elaine, laying down her book.
"You look as if you had seen a ghost."

"Ah, but, mademoiselle--it ees just like that. The safe--if
mademoiselle will come downstairs, I will show it you."

Puzzled but interested, Elaine followed her. In the library
Jennings pointed mutely at the new safe. Elaine approached it. As
they stood about new beads of perspiration, as it were, formed on
it. Elaine touched it, and also quickly withdrew her hand.

"I can't imagine what's the matter," she said. "But--well--
Jennings, you may go--and Marie, also."

When the servants had gone she still regarded the safe with the
same wondering look, then turning out the light, she followed.

She had scarcely disappeared when, from the portiered doorway
nearby, the Clutching Hand appeared, and, after gazing out at
them, took a quick look at the safe.

"Good!" he muttered.

Noiselessly Michael of the sinister face moved in and took a
position in the center of the room, as if on guard, while
Clutching Hand sat before the safe watching it intently.

"Someone at the door--Jennings is answering the bell," Michael
whispered hoarsely.

"Confound it!" muttered Clutching Hand, as both moved again behind
the heavy velour curtains.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

"I'm so glad to see you, Mr. Kennedy," greeted Elaine unaffectedly
as Jennings admitted us.

She had heard the bell and was coming downstairs as we entered. We
three moved toward the library and someone switched on the lights.

Craig strode over to the safe. The cold sweat on it had now turned
to icicles. Craig's face clouded with thought as he examined it
more closely. There was actually a groaning sound from within.

"It can't be opened," he said to himself. "The time lock is set
for tomorrow morning."

Outside, if we had not been so absorbed in the present mystery, we
might have seen Michael and the Clutching Hand listening to us.
Clutching Hand looked hastily at his watch.

"The deuce!" he muttered under his breath, stifling his suppressed
fury.

We stood looking at the safe. Kennedy was deeply interested,
Elaine standing close beside him. Suddenly he seemed to make up
his mind.

"Quick--Elaine!" he cried, taking her arm. "Stand back!"

We all retreated. The safe door, powerful as it was, had actually
begun to warp and bend. The plates were bulging. A moment later,
with a loud report and concussion the door blew off.

A blast of cold air and flakes like snow flew out. Papers were
scattered on every side.

We stood gazing, aghast, a second, then ran forward. Kennedy
quickly examined the safe. He bent down and from the wreck took up
a package, now covered with white.

As quickly he dropped it.

"That is the package that was sent," cried Elaine.

Taking it in a table cover, he laid it on the table and opened it.
Inside was a peculiar shaped flask, open at the top, but like a
vacuum bottle.

"A Dewar flask!" ejaculated Craig.

"What is it?" asked Elaine, appealing to him.

"Liquid air!" he answered. "As it evaporated, the terrific
pressure of expanding air in the safe increased until it blew out
the door. That is what caused the cold sweating and the groans."

We watched him, startled.

On the other side of the portieres Michael and Clutching Hand
waited. Then, in the general confusion, Clutching Hand slowly
disappeared, foiled.

"Where did this package come from?" asked Kennedy of Jennings
suspiciously.

Jennings looked blank.

"Why," put in Elaine, "Michael brought it to me."

"Get Michael," ordered Kennedy.

"Yes, sir," nodded Jennings.

A moment later he returned. "I found him, going upstairs,"
reported Jennings, leading Michael in.

"Where did you get this package?" shot out Kennedy.

"It was left at the door, sir, by a boy, sir."

Question after question could not shake that simple, stolid
sentence. Kennedy frowned.

"You may go," he said finally, as if reserving something for
Michael later.

A sudden exclamation followed from Elaine as Michael passed down
the hall again. She had moved over to the desk, during the
questioning, and was leaning against it.

Inadvertently she had touched an envelope. It was addressed,
"Craig Kennedy."

Craig tore it open, Elaine bending anxiously over his shoulder,
frightened.

We read:

"YOU HAVE INTERFERED FOR THE LAST TIME. IT IS THE END."

Beneath it stood the fearsome sign of the Clutching Hand!

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

The warning of the Clutching Hand had no other effect on Kennedy
than the redoubling of his precautions for safety. Nothing further
happened that night, however, and the next morning found us early
at the laboratory.

It was the late forenoon, when after a hurried trip down to the
office, I rejoined Kennedy at his scientific workshop.

We walked down the street when a big limousine shot past. Kennedy
stopped in the middle of a remark. He had recognized the car, with
a sort of instinct.

At the same moment I saw a smiling face at the window of the car.
It was Elaine Dodge.

The car stopped in something less than twice its length and then
backed toward us.

Kennedy, hat off, was at the window in a moment. There were Aunt
Josephine, and Susie Martin, also.

"Where are you boys going?" asked Elaine, with interest, then
added with a gaiety that ill concealed her real anxiety, "I'm so
glad to see you--to see that--er--nothing has happened from that
dreadful Clutching Hand."

"Why, we were just going up to our rooms," replied Kennedy.

"Can't we drive you around?"

We climbed in and a moment later were off. The ride was only too
short for Kennedy. We stepped out in front of our apartment and
stood chatting for a moment.

"Some day I want to show you the laboratory," Craig was saying.

"It must be so--interesting!" exclaimed Elaine enthusiastically.
"Think of all the bad men you must have caught!"

"I have quite a collection of stuff here at our rooms," remarked
Craig, "almost a museum. Still," he ventured, "I can't promise
that the place is in order," he laughed.

Elaine hesitated. "Would you like to see it?" she wheedled of Aunt
Josephine.

Aunt Josephine nodded acquiescence, and a moment later we all
entered the building.

"You--you are very careful since that last warning?" asked Elaine
as we approached our door.

"More than ever--now," replied Craig. "I have made up my mind to
win."

She seemed to catch at the words as though they had a hidden
meaning, looking first at him and then away, not displeased.

Kennedy had started to unlock the door, when he stopped short.

"See," he said, "this is a precaution I have just installed. I
almost forgot in the excitement."

He pressed a panel and disclosed the box-like apparatus.

"This is my seismograph which tells me whether I have had any
visitors in my absence. If the pen traces a straight line, it is,
all right; but if--hello--Walter, the line is wavy."

We exchanged a significant glance.

"Would you mind--er--standing down the hall just a bit while I
enter?" asked Craig.

"Be careful," cautioned Elaine.

He unlocked the door, standing off to one side. Then he extended
his hand across the doorway. Still nothing happened. There was not
a sound. He looked cautiously into the room. Apparently there was
nothing.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

It had been about the middle of the morning that an express wagon
had pulled up sharply before our apartment.

"Mr. Kennedy live here?" asked one of the expressmen, descending
with his helper and approaching our janitor, Jens Jensen, a
typical Swede, who was coming up out of the basement.

Jens growled a surly, "Yes--but Mr. Kannady, he bane out."

"Too bad--we've got this large cabinet he ordered from Grand
Rapids. We can't cart it around all day. Can't you let us in so we
can leave it?"

Jensen muttered. "Wall--I guess it bane all right."

They took the cabinet off the wagon and carried it upstairs.
Jensen opened our door, still grumbling, and they placed the heavy
cabinet in the living room.

"Sign here."

"You fallers bane a nuisance," protested Jens, signing
nevertheless.

Scarcely had the sound ox their footfalls died away in the outside
hallway when the door of the cabinet slowly opened and a masked
face protruded, gazing about the room.

It was the Clutching Hand!

From the cabinet he took a large package wrapped in newspapers. As
he held it, looking keenly about, his eye rested on Elaine's
picture. A moment he looked at it, then quickly at the fireplace
opposite.

An idea seemed to occur to him. He took the package to the
fireplace, removed the screen, and laid the package over the
andirons with one end pointing out into the room.

Next he took from the cabinet a couple of storage batteries and a
coil of wire. Deftly and quickly he fixed them on the package.

Meanwhile, before an alleyway across the street and further down
the long block the express wagon had stopped. The driver and his
helper clambered out and for a moment stood talking in low tones,
with covert glances at our apartment. They moved into the alley
and the driver drew out a battered pair of opera glasses,
levelling them at our windows.

Having completed fixing the batteries and wires, Clutching Hand
ran the wires along the moulding on the wall overhead, from the
fireplace until he was directly over Elaine's picture. Skillfully,
he managed to fix the wires, using them in place of the picture
wires to support the framed photograph. Then he carefully moved
the photograph until it hung very noticeably askew on the wall.

The last wire joined, he looked about the room, then noiselessly
moved to the window and raised the shade.

Quickly he raised his hand and brought the fingers slowly
together. It was the sign.

Off in the alley, the express driver and his helper were still
gazing up through the opera glass.

"What d'ye see, Bill?" he asked, handing over the glass.

The other took it and looked. "It's him--the Hand, Jack,"
whispered the helper, handing the glasses back.

They jumped into the wagon and away it rattled.

Jensen was smoking placidly as the wagon pulled up the second
time.

"Sorry," said the driver sheepishly, "but we delivered the cabinet
to the wrong Mr. Kennedy."

He pulled out the inevitable book to prove it.

"Wall, you bane fine fallers," growled Jensen, puffing like a
furnace, in his fury. "You cannot go up agane."

"We'll get fired for the mistake," pleaded the helper.

"Just this once," urged the driver, as he rattled some loose
change in his pocket. "Here--there goes a whole day's tips."

He handed Jens a dollar in small change.

Still grumpy but mollified by the silver Jens let them go up and
opened the door to our rooms again. There stood the cabinet, as
outwardly innocent as when it came in.

Lugging and tugging they managed to get the heavy piece of
furniture out and downstairs again, loading it on the wagon. Then
they drove off with it, accompanied by a parting volley from
Jensen.

In an unfrequented street, perhaps half a mile away, the wagon
stopped. With a keen glance around, the driver and his helper made
sure that no one was about.

"Such a shaking up as you've given me!" growled a voice as the
cabinet door opened. "But I've got him this time!"

It was the Clutching Hand.

"There, men, you can leave me here," he ordered.

He motioned to them to drive off and, as they did so, pulled off
his masking handkerchief and dived into a narrow street leading up
to a thoroughfare.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Craig gazed into our living room cautiously.

"I can't see anything wrong," he said to me as I stood just beside
him. "Miss Dodge," he added, "will you and the rest excuse me if I
ask you to wait just a moment longer?"

Elaine watched him, fascinated. He crossed the room, then went
into each of our other rooms. Apparently nothing was wrong and a
minute later he reappeared at the doorway.

"I guess it's all right," he said. "Perhaps it was only Jensen,
the janitor."

Elaine, Aunt Josephine and Susie Martin entered. Craig placed
chairs for them, but still I could see that he was uneasy. From
time to time, while they were admiring one of our treasures after
another, he glanced about suspiciously. Finally he moved over to a
closet and flung the door open, ready for anything. No one was in
the closet and he closed it hastily.

"What is the trouble, do you think?" asked Elaine wonderingly,
noticing his manner.

"I--I can't just say," answered Craig, trying to appear easy.

She had risen and with keen interest was looking at the books, the
pictures, the queer collection of weapons and odds and ends from
the underworld that Craig had amassed in his adventures.

At last her eye wandered across the room. She caught sight of her
own picture, occupying a place of honor--but hanging askew.

"Isn't that just like a man!" she exclaimed laughingly. "Such
housekeepers as you are--such carelessness!"

She had taken a step or two across the room to straighten the
picture.

"Miss Dodge!" almost shouted Kennedy, his face fairly blanched,
"Stop!"

She turned, her stunning eyes filled with amazement at his
suddenness. Nevertheless she moved quickly to one side, as he
waved his arms, unable to speak quickly enough.

Kennedy stood quite still, gazing at the picture, askew, with
suspicion.

"That wasn't that way when we left, was it, Walter?" he asked.

"It certainly was not," I answered positively, "There was more
time spent in getting that picture just right than I ever saw you
spend on all the rest of the room."

Craig frowned.

As for myself, I did not know what to make of it.

"I'm afraid I shall have to ask you to step into this back room,"
said Craig at length to the ladies. "I'm sorry--but we can't be
too careful with this intruder, whoever he was."

They rose, surprised, but, as he continued to urge them, they
moved into my room.

Elaine, however, stopped at the door.

For a moment Kennedy appeared to be considering. Then his eye fell
on a fishing rod that stood in a corner. He took it and moved
toward the picture.

On his hands and knees, to one side, down as close as he could get
to the floor, with the rod extended at arm's length, he motioned
to me to do the same, behind him.

Elaine, unable to repress her interest took a half step forward,
breathless, from the doorway, while Susie Martin and Aunt
Josephine stood close behind her.

Carefully Kennedy reached out with the pole and straightened the
picture.

As he did so there was a flash, a loud, deafening report, and a
great puff of smoke from the fireplace.

The fire screen was riddled and overturned. A charge of buckshot
shattered the precious photograph of Elaine.

We had dropped flat on the floor at the report. I looked about.
Kennedy was unharmed, and so were the rest.

With a bound he was at the fireplace, followed by Elaine and the
rest of us. There, in what remained of a package done up roughly
in newspaper, was a shot gun with its barrel sawed off about six
inches from the lock, fastened to a block of wood, and connected
to a series of springs on the trigger, released by a little
electromagnetic arrangement actuated by two batteries and leading
by wires up along the moulding to the picture where the slightest
touch would complete the circuit.

The newspapers which were wrapped about the deadly thing were
burning, and Kennedy quickly tore them off, throwing them into the
fireplace.

A startled cry from Elaine caused us to turn.

She was standing directly before her shattered picture where it
hung awry on the wall. The heavy charges of buckshot had knocked
away large pieces of paper and plaster under it.

"Craig!" she gasped.

He was at her side in a second.

She laid one hand on his arm, as she faced him. With the other she
traced an imaginary line in the air from the level of the buckshot
to his head and then straight to the infernal thing that had lain
in the fireplace.

"And to think," she shuddered, "that it was through ME that he
tried to kill you!"

"Never mind," laughed Craig easily, as they gazed into each
other's eyes, drawn together by their mutual peril, "Clutching
Hand will have to be cleverer than this to get either of us--
Elaine!"




CHAPTER V

THE POISONED ROOM


Elaine and Craig were much together during the next few days.

Somehow or other, it seemed that the chase of the Clutching Hand
involved long conferences in the Dodge library and even, in fact,
extended to excursions into that notoriously crime-infested
neighborhood of Riverside Drive with its fashionable processions
of automobiles and go-carts--as far north, indeed, as that
desperate haunt known as Grant's Tomb.

More than that, these delvings into the underworld involved
Kennedy in the necessity of wearing a frock coat and silk hat in
the afternoon, and I found that he was selecting his neckwear with
a care that had been utterly foreign to him during all the years
previous that I had known him.

It all looked very suspicious to me.

But, to return to the more serious side of the affair.

Kennedy and Elaine had scarcely come out of the house and
descended the steps, one afternoon, when a sinister face appeared
in a basement areaway nearby.

The figure was crouched over, with his back humped up almost as if
deformed, and his left hand had an unmistakable twist.

It was the Clutching Hand.

He wore a telephone inspector's hat and coat and carried a bag
slung by a strap over his shoulder. For once he had left off his
mask, but, in place of it, his face was covered by a scraggly
black beard. In fact, he seemed to avoid turning his face full,
three-quarters or even profile to anyone, unless he had to do so.
As much as possible he averted it, but he did so in a clever way
that made it seem quite natural. The disguise was effective.

He saw Kennedy and Miss Dodge and slunk unobtrusively against a
railing, with his head turned away. Laughing and chatting, they
passed. As they walked down the street, Clutching Hand turned and
gazed after them. Involuntarily the menacing hand clutched in open
hatred.

Then he turned in the other direction and, going up the steps of
the Dodge house, rang the bell.

"Telephone inspector," he said in a loud tone as Michael, in
Jennings' place for the afternoon, opened the door.

He accompanied the words with the sign and Michael, taking care
that the words be heard, in case anyone was listening, admitted
him.

As it happened, Aunt Josephine was upstairs in Elaine's room. She
was fixing flowers in a vase on the dressing table of her idolized
niece. Meanwhile, Rusty, the collie, lay, half blinking, on the
floor.

"Who is this?" she asked, as Michael led the bogus telephone
inspector into the room.

"A man from the telephone company," he answered deferentially.

Aunt Josephine, unsophisticated, allowed them to enter without a
further question.

Quickly, like a good workman, Clutching Hand went to the telephone
instrument and by dint of keeping his finger on the hook and his
back to Aunt Josephine succeeded in conveying the illusion that he
was examining it.

Aunt Josephine moved to the door. Not so, Rusty. He did not like
the looks of the stranger and he had no scruples against letting
it be known.

As she put her hand on the knob to go out into the hall, Rusty
uttered a low growl which grew into a full-lunged snarl at the
Clutching Hand. Clutching Hand kicked at him vigorously, if
surreptitiously. Rusty barked.

"Lady," he disguised his voice, "will yer please ter call off the
dog? Me and him don't seem to cotton to each other."

"Here, Rusty," she commanded, "down!"

Together Aunt Josephine and Michael removed the still protesting
Rusty.

No sooner was the door shut than the Clutching Hand moved over
swiftly to it. For a few seconds, he stood gazing at them as they
disappeared down-stairs. Then he came back into the center of the
room.

Hastily he opened his bag and from it drew a small powder-spraying
outfit such as I have seen used for spraying bug-powder. He then
took out a sort of muzzle with an elastic band on it and slipped
it over his head so that the muzzle protected his nose and mouth.

He seemed to work a sort of pumping attachment and from the nozzle
of the spraying instrument blew out a cloud of powder which he
directed at the wall.

The wall paper was one of those rich, fuzzy varieties and it
seemed to catch the powder. Clutching Hand appeared to be more
than satisfied with the effect.

Meanwhile, Michael, in the hallway, on guard to see that no one
bothered the Clutching Hand at his work, was overcome by curiosity
to see what his master was doing. He opened the door a little bit
and gazed stealthily through the crack into the room.

Clutching Hand was now spraying the rug close to the dressing
table of Elaine and was standing near the mirror. He stooped down
to examine the rug. Then, as he raised his head, he happened to
look into the mirror. In it he could see the full reflection of
Michael behind him, gazing into the room.

"The scoundrel!" muttered Clutching Hand, with repressed fury at
the discovery.

He rose quickly and shut off the spraying instrument, stuffing it
into the bag. He took a step or two toward the door. Michael drew
back, fearfully, pretending now to be on guard.

Clutching Hand opened the door and, still wearing the muzzle,
beckoned to Michael. Michael could scarcely control his fears. But
he obeyed, entering Elaine's room after the Clutching Hand, who
locked the door.

"Were you watching me?" demanded the master criminal, with rage.

Michael, trembling all over, shook his head. For a moment
Clutching Hand looked him over disdainfully at the clumsy lie.

Then he brutally struck Michael in the face, knocking him down. An
ungovernable, almost insane fury seemed to possess the man as he
stood over the prostrate footman, cursing.

"Get up!" he ordered.

Michael obeyed, thoroughly cowed.

"Take me to the cellar, now," he demanded.

Michael led the way from the room without a protest, the master
criminal following him closely.

Down into the cellar, by a back way, they went, Clutching Hand
still wearing his muzzle and Michael saying not a word.

Suddenly Clutching Hand turned on him and seized him by the
collar.

"Now, go upstairs, you," he muttered, shaking him until his teeth
fairly chattered, "and if you watch me again--I'll kill you!"

He thrust Michael away and the footman, overcome by fear, hurried
upstairs. Still trembling and fearful, Michael paused In the
hallway, looking back resentfully, for even one who is in the
power of a super-criminal is still human and has feelings that may
be injured.

Michael put his hand on his face where the Clutching Hand had
struck him. There he waited, muttering to himself. As he thought
it over, anger took the place of fear. He slowly turned in the
direction of the cellar. Closing both his fists, Michael made a
threatening gesture at his master in crime.

Meanwhile, Clutching Hand was standing by the electric meter. He
examined it carefully, feeling where the wires entered and left it
starting to trace them out. At last he came to a point where it
seemed suitable to make a connection for some purpose he had in
mind.

Quickly he took some wire from his bag and connected it with the
electric light wires. Next, he led these wires, concealed of
course, along the cellar floor, in the direction of the furnace.

The furnace was one of the old hot air heaters and he paused
before it as though seeking something. Then he bent down beside it
and uncovered a little tank. He took off the top on which were
cast in the iron the words:

"This tank must be kept full of water."

He thrust his hand gingerly into it, bringing it out quickly. The
tank was nearly full of water and he brought his hand out wet. It
was also hot. But he did not seem to mind that, for he shook his
head with a smile of satisfaction.

Next, from his capacious bag he took two metal poles, or
electrodes, and fastened them carefully to the ends of the wires,
placing them at opposite ends of the tank in the water.

For several moments he watched. The water inside the tank seemed
the same as before, only on each electrode there appeared bubbles,
on one bubbles of oxygen, on the other of hydrogen. The water was
decomposing under the current by electrolysis.

Another moment he surveyed his work to see that he had left no
loose ends. Then he picked up his bag and moved toward the cellar
steps. As he did so, he removed the muzzle from his nose and
quietly let himself out of the house.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

The next morning, Rusty, who had been Elaine's constant companion
since the trouble had begun, awakened his mistress by licking her
hand as it hung limply over the side of her bed.

She awakened with a start and put her hand to her head. She felt
ill.

"Poor old fellow," she murmured, half dazedly, for the moment
endowing her pet with her own feelings, as she patted his faithful
shaggy head.

Rusty moved away again, wagging his tail listlessly. The collie,
too, felt ill. Elaine watched him as he walked, dejected, across
the room and then lay down.

"Why, Miss Elaine--what ees ze mattair? You are so pale!"
exclaimed the maid, Marie, as she entered the room a moment later
with the morning's mail on a salver.

"I don't feel well, Marie," she replied, trying with her slender
white hand to brush the cobwebs from her brain. "I--I wish you'd
tell Aunt Josephine to telephone Dr. Hayward."

"Yes, mademoiselle," answered Marie, deftly and sympathetically
straightening out the pillows.

Languidly Elaine took the letters one by one off the salver. She
looked at them, but seemed not to have energy enough to open them.

Finally she selected one and slowly tore it open. It had no
superscription, but it at once arrested her attention and
transfixed her with terror.

It read:

"YOU ARE SICK THIS MORNING. TOMORROW YOU WILL BE WORSE. THE NEXT
DAY YOU WILL DIE UNLESS YOU DISCHARGE CRAIG KENNEDY."

It was signed by the mystic trademark of the fearsome Clutching
Hand!

Elaine drew back into the pillows, horror stricken.

Quickly she called to Marie. "Go--get Aunt Josephine--right away!"

As Marie almost flew down the hall, Elaine still holding the
letter convulsively, pulled herself together and got up,
trembling. She almost seized the telephone as she called Kennedy's
number.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Kennedy, in his stained laboratory apron, was at work before his
table, while I was watching him with intense interest, when the
telephone rang.

Without a word he answered the call and I could see a look of
perturbation cross his face. I knew it was from Elaine, but could
tell nothing about the nature of the message.

An instant later he almost tore off the apron and threw on his hat
and coat. I followed him as he dashed out of the laboratory.

"This is terrible--terrible," he muttered, as we hurried across
the campus of the University to a taxi-cab stand.

A few minutes later, when we arrived at the Dodge mansion, we
found Aunt Josephine and Marie doing all they could under the
circumstances. Aunt Josephine had just given her a glass of water
which she drank eagerly. Rusty had, meanwhile, crawled under the
bed, caring only to be alone and undisturbed.

Dr. Hayward had arrived and had just finished taking her pulse and
temperature as our cab pulled up.

Jennings who had evidently been expecting us let us in without a
word and conducted us up to Elaine's room. We knocked.

"Mr. Kennedy and Mr. Jameson," we could hear Marie whisper in a
subdued voice.

"Tell them to come in," answered Elaine eagerly.

We entered. There she lay, beautiful as ever, but with a whiteness
of her fresh cheek that was too etherially unnatural. Elaine was
quite ill indeed.

"Oh--I'm so glad to see you," she breathed, with an air of relief
as Kennedy advanced.

"Why--what is the matter?" asked Craig, anxiously.

Dr. Hayward shook his head dubiously, but Kennedy did not notice
him, for, as he approached Elaine, she drew from the covers where
she had concealed it a letter and handed it to him.

Craig took it and read:

"YOU ARE SICK THIS MORNING. TOMORROW YOU WILL BE WORSE. THE NEXT
DAY YOU WILL DIE UNLESS YOU DISCHARGE CRAIG KENNEDY."

At the signature of the Clutching Hand he frowned, then, noticing
Dr. Hayward, turned to him and repeated his question, "What is the
matter?"

Dr. Hayward continued shaking his head. "I cannot diagnose her
symptoms," he shrugged.

As I watched Kennedy's face, I saw his nostrils dilating, almost
as if he were a hound and had scented his quarry. I sniffed, too.
There seemed to be a faint odor, almost as if of garlic, in the
room. It was unmistakable and Craig looked about him curiously but
said nothing.

As he sniffed, he moved impatiently and his foot touched Rusty,
under the bed. Rusty whined and moved back lazily. Craig bent over
and looked at him.

"What's the matter with Rusty?" he asked. "Is he sick, too?"

"Why--yes," answered Elaine, following Craig with her deep eyes.
"Poor Rusty. He woke me up this morning. He feels as badly as I
do, poor old fellow."

Craig reached down and gently pulled the collie out into the room.
Rusty crouched down close to the floor. His nose was hot and dry
and feverish. He was plainly ill.

"How long has Rusty been in the room?" asked Craig.

"All night," answered Elaine. "I wouldn't think of being without
him now."

Kennedy lifted the dog by his front paws. Rusty submitted
patiently, but without any spirit.

"May I take Rusty along with me?" he asked finally.

Elaine hesitated. "Surely," she said at length, "only, be gentle
with him."

Craig looked at her as though it would be impossible to be
otherwise with anything belonging to Elaine.

"Of course," he said simply. "I thought that I might be able to
discover the trouble from studying him."

We stayed only a few minutes longer, for Kennedy seemed to realize
the necessity of doing something immediately and even Dr. Hayward
was fighting in the dark. As for me, I gave it up, too. I could
find no answer to the mystery of what was the peculiar malady of
Elaine.

Back in the laboratory, Kennedy set to work immediately, brushing
everything else aside. He began by drawing off a little of Rusty's
blood in a tube, very carefully.

"Here, Walter," he said pointing to the little incision he had
made. "Will you take care of him?"

I bound up the wounded leg and gave the poor beast a drink of
water. Rusty looked at me gratefully from his big sad brown eyes.
He seemed to appreciate our gentleness and to realize that we were
trying to help him.

In the meantime, Craig had taken a flask with a rubber stopper.
Through one hole in it was fitted a long funnel; through another
ran a glass tube. The tube connected with a large U-shaped drying
tube filled with calcium chloride, which, in turn, connected with
a long open tube with an upturned end.

Into the flask, Craig dropped some pure granulated zinc. Then he
covered it with dilute sulphuric acid, poured in through the
funnel tube.

"That forms hydrogen gas," he explained to me, "which passes
through the drying tube and the ignition tube. Wait a moment until
all the air is expelled from the tubes."

He lighted a match and touched it to the open, upturned end. The
hydrogen, now escaping freely, was ignited with a pale blue flame.

A few moments later, having extracted something like a serum from
the blood he had drawn off from Rusty. He added the extract to the
mixture in the flask, pouring it in, also through the funnel tube.

Almost immediately the pale, bluish flame turned to bluish white,
and white fumes were formed. In the ignition tube a sort of
metallic deposit appeared.

Quickly Craig made one test after another.

As he did so, I sniffed. There was an unmistakable odor of garlic
in the air which made me think of what I had already noticed in
Elaine's room.

"What is it?" I asked, mystified.

"Arseniuretted hydrogen," he answered, still engaged in verifying
his tests. "This is the Marsh test for arsenic."

I gazed from Kennedy to the apparatus, then to Rusty and a picture
of Elaine, pale and listless, flashed before me.

"Arsenic!" I repeated in horror.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

I had scarcely recovered from the surprise of Kennedy's startling
revelation when the telephone rang again. Kennedy seized the
receiver, thinking evidently that the message might be from or
about Elaine.

But from the look on his face and from his manner, I could gather
that, although it was not from Elaine herself, it was about
something that interested him greatly. As he talked, he took his
little notebook and hastily jotted down something in it. Still, I
could not make out what the conversation was about.

"Good!" I heard him say finally. "I shall keep the appointment--
absolutely."

His face wore a peculiar puzzled look as he hung up the receiver.

"What was it?" I asked eagerly.

"It was Elaine's footman, Michael," he replied thoughtfully. "As I
suspected, he says that he is a confederate of the Clutching Hand
and if we will protect him he will tell us the trouble with
Elaine."

I considered a moment. "How's that?" I queried.

"Well," added Craig, "you see, Michael has become infuriated by
the treatment he received from the Clutching Hand. I believe he
cuffed him in the face yesterday. Anyway, he says he has
determined to get even and betray him. So, after hearing how
Elaine was, he slipped out of the servant's door and looking about
carefully to see that he wasn't followed, he went straight to a
drug store and called me up. He seemed extremely nervous and
fearful."

I did not like the looks of the thing, and said so. "Craig," I
objected vehemently, "don't go to meet him. It is a trap."

Kennedy had evidently considered my objection already.

"It may be a trap," he replied slowly, "but Elaine is dying and
we've got to see this thing through."

As he spoke, he took an automatic from a drawer of a cabinet and
thrust it into his pocket. Then he went to another drawer and took
out several sections of thin tubing which seemed to be made to
fasten together as a fishing pole is fastened, but were now
separate, as if ready for travelling.

"Well--are you coming, Walter?" he asked finally--the only answer
to my flood of caution.

Then he went out. I followed, still arguing.

"If YOU go, _I_ go," I capitulated. "That's all there is to it."

Following the directions that Michael had given over the telephone
Craig led me into one of the toughest parts of the lower West
Side.

"Here's the place," he announced, stopping across the street from
a dingy Raines Law Hotel.

"Pretty tough," I objected. "Are you sure?"

"Quite," replied Kennedy, consulting his note book again.

"Well, I'll be hanged if I'll go in that joint," I persisted.

It had no effect on Kennedy. "Nonsense, Walter," he replied,
crossing the street.

Reluctantly I followed and we entered the place.

"I want a room," asked Craig as we were accosted by the
proprietor, comfortably clad in a loud checked suit and striped
shirt sleeves. "I had one here once before--forty-nine, I think."

"Fifty--" I began to correct.

Kennedy trod hard on my toes.

"Yes, forty-nine," he repeated.

The proprietor called a stout negro porter, waiter, and bell-hop
all combined in one, who led us upstairs.

"Fohty-nine, sah," he pointed out, as Kennedy dropped a dime into
his ready palm.

The negro left us and as Craig started to enter, I objected, "But,
Craig, it was fifty-nine, not forty-nine. This is the wrong room."

"I know it," he replied. "I had it written in the book. But I want
forty-nine--now. Just follow me, Walter."

Nervously I followed him into the room.

"Don't you understand?" he went on. "Room forty-nine is probably
just the same as fifty-nine, except perhaps the pictures and
furniture, only it is on the floor below."

He gazed about keenly. Then he took a few steps to the window and
threw it open. As he stood there he took the parts of the rods he
had been carrying and fitted them together until he had a pole
some eight or ten feet long. At one end was a curious arrangement
that seemed to contain lenses and a mirror. At the other end was
an eye-piece, as nearly as I could make out.

"What is that?" I asked as he completed his work.

"That? That is an instrument something on the order of a miniature
submarine periscope," Craig replied, still at work.

I watched him, fascinated at his resourcefulness. He stealthily
thrust the mirror end of the periscope out of the window and up
toward the corresponding window up stairs. Then he gazed eagerly
through the eye-piece.

"Walter--look!" he exclaimed to me.

I did. There, sure enough, was Michael, pacing up and down the
room. He had already preceded us. In his scared and stealthy
manner, he had entered the Raines Law hotel which announced
"Furnished Rooms for Gentlemen Only." There he had sought a room,
fifty-nine, as he had said.

As he came into the room, he had looked about, overcome by the
enormity of what he was about to do. He locked the door. Still, he
had not been able to avoid gazing about fearfully, as he was doing
now that we saw him.

Nothing had happened. Yet he brushed his hand over his forehead
and breathed a sigh of relief. The air seemed to be stifling him
and already he had gone to the window and thrown it open. Then he
had gazed out as though there might be some unknown peril in the
very air. He had now drawn back from the window and was
considering. He was actually trembling. Should he flee? He
whistled softly to himself to keep his shaking fears under
control. Then he started to pace up and down the room in nervous
impatience and irresolution.

As I looked at him nervously walking to and fro, I could not help
admitting that things looked safe enough and all right to me.
Kennedy folded the periscope up and we left our room, mounting the
remaining flight of stairs.

In fifty-nine we could hear the measured step of the footman.
Craig knocked. The footsteps ceased. Then the door opened slowly
and I could see a cold blue automatic.

"Look out!" I cried.

Michael in his fear had drawn a gun.

"It's all right, Michael," reassured Craig calmly. "All right,
Walter," he added to me.

The gun dropped back into the footman's pocket. We entered and
Michael again locked the door. Not a word had been spoken by him
so far.

Next Michael moved to the center of the room and, as I realized
later, brought himself in direct lines with the open window. He
seemed to be overcome with fear at his betrayal and stood there
breathing heavily.

"Professor Kennedy," he began, "I have been so mistreated that I
have made up my mind to tell you all I know about this Clutching--
"

Suddenly he drew a sharp breath and both his hands clutched at his
own breast. He did not stagger and fall in the ordinary manner,
but seemed to bend at the knees and waist and literally crumple
down on his face.

We ran to him. Craig turned him over gently on his back and
examined him. He called. No answer. Michael was almost pulseless.

Quickly Craig tore off his collar and bared his breast, for the
man seemed to be struggling for breath. As he did so, he drew from
Michael's chest a small, sharp-pointed dart.

"What's that?" I ejaculated, horror stricken.

"A poisoned blow gun dart such as is used by the South American
Indians on the upper Orinoco," he said slowly.

He examined it carefully.

"What is the poison?" I asked.

"Curari," he replied simply. "It acts on the respiratory muscles,
paralyzing them, and causing asphyxiation."

The dart seemed to have been made of a quill with a very sharp
point, hollow, and containing the deadly poison in the sharpened
end.

"Look out!" I cautioned as he handled it.

"Oh, that's all right," he answered casually. "If I don't scratch
myself, I am safe enough. I could swallow the stuff and it
wouldn't hurt me--unless I had an abrasion of the lips or some
internal cut."

Kennedy continued to examine the dart until suddenly I heard a low
exclamation of surprise from him. Inside the hollow quill was a
thin sheet of tissue paper, tightly rolled. He drew it out and
read:

"To know me is DEATH Kennedy--Take Warning!"

Underneath was the inevitable Clutching Hand sign.

We jumped to our feet. Kennedy rushed to the window and slammed it
shut, while I seized the key from Michael's pocket, opened the
door and called for help.

A moment before, on the roof of a building across the street, one
might have seen a bent, skulking figure. His face was copper
colored and on his head was a thick thatch of matted hair. He
looked like a South American Indian, in a very dilapidated suit of
castoff American clothes.

He had slipped out through a doorway leading to a flight of steps
from the roof to the hallway of the tenement. His fatal dart sent
on its unerring mission with a precision born of long years in the
South American jungle, he concealed the deadly blow-gun in his
breast pocket, with a cruel smile, and, like one of his native
venomous serpents, wormed his way down the stairs again.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

My outcry brought a veritable battalion of aid. The hotel
proprietor, the negro waiter, and several others dashed upstairs,
followed shortly by a portly policeman, puffing at the exertion.

"What's the matter, here?" he panted. "Ye're all under arrest!"

Kennedy quietly pulled out his card case and taking the policeman
aside showed it to him.

"We had an appointment to meet this man--in that Clutching Hand
case, you know. He is Miss Dodge's footman," Craig explained.

Then he took the policeman into his confidence, showing him the
dart and explaining about the poison. The officer stared blankly.

"I must get away, too," hurried on Craig. "Officer, I will leave
you to take charge here. You can depend on me for the inquest."

The officer nodded.

"Come on, Walter," whispered Craig, eager to get away, then adding
the one word, "Elaine!"

I followed hastily, not slow to understand his fear for her.

Nor were Craig's fears groundless. In spite of all that could be
done for her, Elaine was still in bed, much weaker now than
before. While we had been gone, Dr. Hayward, Aunt Josephine and
Marie were distracted.

More than that, the Clutching Hand had not neglected the
opportunity, either.

Suddenly, just before our return, a stone had come hurtling
through the window, without warning of any kind, and had landed on
Elaine's bed.

Below, as we learned some time afterwards, a car had drawn up
hastily and the evil-faced crook whom the Clutching Hand had used
to rid himself of the informer, "Limpy Red," had leaped out and
hurled the stone through the window, as quickly leaping back into
the car and whisking away.

Elaine had screamed. All had reached for the stone. But she had
been the first to seize it and discover that around it was wrapped
a piece of paper on which was the ominous warning, signed as usual
by the Hand:

"Michael is dead. Tomorrow, you. Then Kennedy. Stop before it is
too late."

Elaine had sunk back into her pillows, paler than ever from this
second shock, while the others, as they read the note, were
overcome by alarm and despair, at the suddenness of the thing.

It was just then that Kennedy and I arrived and were admitted.

"Oh, Mr. Kennedy," cried Elaine, handing him the note.

Craig took it and read. "Miss Dodge," he said, as he held the note
out to me, "you are suffering from arsenic poisoning--but I don't
know yet how it is being administered."

He gazed about keenly. Meanwhile, I had taken the crumpled note
from him and was reading it. Somehow, I had leaned against the
wall. As I turned, Craig happened to glance at me.

"For heaven's sake, Walter," I heard him exclaim. "What have you
been up against?"

He fairly leaped at me and I felt him examining my shoulder where
I had been leaning on the wall. Something on the paper had come
off and had left a white mark on my shoulder. Craig looked puzzled
from me to the wall.

"Arsenic!" he cried.

He whipped out a pocket lens and looked at the paper. "This heavy
fuzzy paper is fairly loaded with it, powdered," he reported.

I looked, too. The powdered arsenic was plainly discernible. "Yes,
here it is," he continued, standing absorbed in thought. "But why
did it work so effectively?"

He sniffed as he had before. So did I. There was still the faint
smell of garlic. Kennedy paced the room. Suddenly, pausing by the
register, an idea seemed to strike him.

"Walter," he whispered, "come down cellar with me."

"Oh--be careful," cried Elaine, anxious for him.

"I will," he called back.

As he flashed his pocket electric bull's-eye about, his gaze fell
on the electric meter. He paused before it. In spite of the fact
that it was broad daylight, it was running. His face puckered.

"They are using no current at present in the house," he ruminated.
"Yet the meter is running."

He continued to examine the meter. Then he began to follow the
electric wires along. At last he discovered a place where they had
been tampered with and tapped by other wires.

"The work of the Clutching Hand!" he muttered.

Eagerly he followed the wires to the furnace and around to the
back. There they led right into a little water tank. Kennedy
yanked them out. As he did so he pulled something with them.

"Two electrodes--the villain placed there," he exclaimed, holding
them up triumphantly for me to see.

"Y-yes," I replied dubiously, "but what does it all mean?"

"Why, don't you see? Under the influence of the electric current
the water was decomposed and gave off oxygen and hydrogen. The
free hydrogen passed up the furnace pipe and combining with the
arsenic in the wall paper formed the deadly arseniuretted
hydrogen."

He cast the whole improvised electrolysis apparatus on the floor
and dashed up the cellar steps.

"I've found it!" he cried, hurrying into Elaine's room. "It's in
this room--a deadly gas--arseniuretted hydrogen."

He tore open the windows and threw them all open. "Have her
moved," he cried to Aunt Josephine. "Then have a vacuum cleaner go
over every inch of wall, carpet and upholstery."

Standing beside her, he breathlessly explained his discovery.
"That wall paper has been loaded down with arsenic, probably Paris
green or Schweinfurth green, which is aceto-arsenite of copper.
Every minute you are here, you are breathing arseniuretted
hydrogen. The Clutching Hand has cleverly contrived to introduce
the nascent gas into the room. That acts on the arsenic compounds
in the wall paper and hangings and sets free the gas. I thought I
knew the smell the moment I got a whiff of it. You are slowly
being poisoned by minute quantities of the deadly gas. This
Clutching Hand is a diabolical genius. Think of it--poisoned wall
paper!"

No one said a word. Kennedy reached down and took the two
Clutching Hand messages Elaine had received. "I shall want to
study these notes, more, too," he said, holding them up to the
wall at the head of the bed as he flashed his pocket lens at them.
"You see, Elaine, I may be able to get something from studying the
ink, the paper, the handwriting--"

Suddenly both leaped back, with a cry.

Their faces had been several inches apart. Something had whizzed
between them and literally impaled the two notes on the wall.

Down the street, on the roof of a carriage house, back of a
neighbor's, might have been seen the uncouth figure of the
dilapidated South American Indian crouching behind a chimney and
gazing intently at the Dodge house.

As Craig had thrown open Elaine's window and turned to Elaine, the
figure had crouched closer to his chimney.

Then with an uncanny determination he slowly raised the blow-gun
to his lips.

I jumped forward, followed by Dr. Hayward, Aunt Josephine, and
Marie. Kennedy had a peculiar look as he pulled out from the wall
a blow-gun dart similar in every way to that which had killed
Michael.

"Craig!" gasped Elaine, reaching up and laying her soft white hand
on his arm in undisguised fear for him, "you--you must give up
this chase for the Clutching Hand!"

"Give up the chase for the Clutching Hand?" he repeated in
surprise. "Never! Not until either he or I is dead!"

There was both fear and admiration mingled in her look, as he
reached down and patted her dainty shoulder encouragingly.




CHAPTER VI

THE VAMPIRE


Kennedy went the next day to the Dodge house, and, as usual, Perry
Bennett was there in the library with Elaine, still going over the
Clutching Hand case, in their endeavor to track down the
mysterious master criminal.

Bennett seemed as deeply as ever in love with Elaine. Still, as
Jennings admitted Craig, it was sufficiently evident by the manner
in which Elaine left Bennett and ran to meet Craig that she had
the highest regard for him.

"I've brought you a little document that may interest you,"
remarked Kennedy, reaching into his pocket and pulling out an
envelope.

Elaine tore it open and looked at the paper within.

"Oh, how thoughtful of you!" she exclaimed in surprise.

It was a permit from the police made out in her name allowing her
to carry a revolver.

A moment later, Kennedy reached into his coat pocket and produced
a little automatic which he handed to her.

"Thank you," she cried eagerly.

Elaine examined the gun with interest, then, raising it, pointed
it playfully at Bennett.

"Oh--no--no!" exclaimed Kennedy, taking her arm quickly, and
gently deflecting the weapon away. "You mustn't think it is a toy.
It explodes at a mere touch of the trigger--when that safety
ratchet is turned."

Bennett had realized the danger and had jumped back, almost
mechanically. As he did so, he bumped into a suit of medieval
armor standing by the wall, knocking it over with a resounding
crash.

"I beg pardon," he ejaculated, "I'm very sorry. That was very
awkward of me."

Jennings, who had been busy about the portieres at the doorway,
started to pick up the fallen knight. Some of the pieces were
broken, and the three gathered about as the butler tried to fit
them together again as best he could.

"Too bad, too bad," apologized Bennett profusely. "I really forgot
how close I was to the thing."

"Oh, never mind," returned Elaine, a little crestfallen, "It is
smashed all right--but it was my fault. Jennings, send for someone
to repair it."

She turned to Kennedy. "But I do wish you would teach me how to
use this thing," she added, touching the automatic gingerly.

"Gladly," he returned.

"Won't you join us, Mr. Bennett?" asked Elaine.

"No," the young lawyer smiled, "I'm afraid I can't. You see, I had
an engagement with another client and I'm already late."

He took his hat and coat and, with a reluctant farewell, moved
toward the hallway.

A moment later Elaine and Craig followed, while Jennings finished
restoring the armor as nearly as possible as it had been.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

It was late that night that a masked figure succeeded in raising
itself to the narrow ornamental ledge under Elaine's bedroom
window.

Elaine was a light sleeper and, besides, Rusty, her faithful
collie, now fully recovered from the poison, was in her room.

Rusty growled and the sudden noise wakened her.

Startled, Elaine instantly thought of the automatic. She reached
under her pillow, keeping very quiet, and drew forth the gun that
Craig had given her. Stealthily concealing her actions under the
covers, she levelled the automatic at the figure silhouetted in
her window and fired three times.

The figure fell back.

Down in the street, below, the assistant of the Clutching Hand who
had waited while Taylor Dodge was electrocuted, was waiting now as
his confederate, "Pitts Slim"--which indicated that he was both
wiry in stature and libellous in delegating his nativity--made the
attempt.

As Slim came tumbling down, having fallen back from the window
above, mortally wounded, the confederate lifted him up and carried
him out of sight hurriedly.

Elaine, by this time, had turned on the lights and had run to the
window to look out. Rusty was barking loudly.

In a side street, nearby, stood a waiting automobile, at the wheel
of which sat another of the emissaries of the Clutching Hand. The
driver looked up, startled, as he saw his fellow hurry around the
corner carrying the wounded Pitts Slim. It was the work of just a
moment to drop the wounded man, as comfortably as possible under
the circumstances, in the rear seat, while his pals started the
car off with a jerk in the hurry of escape.

Jennings, having hastily slipped his trousers on over his pajamas
came running down the hall, while Marie, frightened, came in the
other direction. Aunt Josephine appeared a few seconds later,
adding to the general excitement.

"What's the matter?" she asked, anxiously.

"A burglar, I think," exclaimed Elaine, still holding the gun in
her hand. "Someone tried to get into my window."

"My gracious," cried Aunt Josephine, in alarm, "where will this
thing end?"

Elaine was doing her best now to quiet the fears of her aunt and
the rest of the household.

"Well," she laughed, a little nervously, now that it was all over,
"I want you all to go to bed and stop worrying about me. Don't you
see, I'm perfectly able to take care of myself? Besides, there
isn't a chance, now, of the burglar coming back. Why, I shot him."

"Yes," put in Aunt Josephine, "but--"

Elaine laughingly interrupted her and playfully made as though she
were driving them out of her room, although they were all very
much concerned over the affair. However, they went finally, and
she locked the door.

"Rusty!" she called, "Down there!"

The intelligent collie seemed to understand. He lay down by the
doorway, his nose close to the bottom of the door and his ears
alert.

Finally Elaine, too, retired again.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Meanwhile the wounded man was being hurried to one of the hangouts
of the mysterious Clutching Hand, an old-fashioned house in the
Westchester suburbs. It was a carefully hidden place, back from
the main road, surrounded by trees, with a driveway leading up to
it.

The car containing the wounded Pitts Slim drew up and the other
two men leaped out of it. With a hurried glance about, they
unlocked the front door with a pass-key and entered, carrying the
man.

Indoors was another emissary of the Clutching Hand, a rather
studious looking chap.

"Why, what's the matter?" he exclaimed, as the crooks entered his
room, supporting their half-fainting, wounded pal.

"Slim got a couple of pills," they panted, as they laid him on a
couch.

"How?" demanded the other.

"Trying to get into the Dodge house. Elaine did it."

Slim was, quite evidently, badly wounded and was bleeding
profusely. A glance at him was enough for the studious-looking
chap. He went to a secret panel and, pressing it down, took out
what was apparently a house telephone.

In another part of this mysterious house was the secret room of
the Clutching Hand himself where he hid his identity from even his
most trusted followers. It was a small room, lined with books on
every conceivable branch of science that might aid him and
containing innumerable little odds and ends of paraphernalia that
might help in his nefarious criminal career.

His telephone rang and he took down the receiver.

"Pitts Slim's been wounded--badly--Chief," was all he waited to
hear.

With scarcely a word, he hung up the receiver, then opened a table
drawer and took out his masking handkerchief. Next he went to a
nearby bookcase, pressed another secret spring, and a panel
opened. He passed through, the handkerchief adjusted.

Across, in the larger, outside study, another panel opened and the
Clutching Hand, all crouched up, transformed, appeared. Without a
word he advanced to the couch on which the wounded crook lay and
examined him.

"How did it happen?" he asked at length.

"Miss Dodge shot him," answered the others, "with an automatic."

"That Craig Kennedy must have given it to her!" he exclaimed with
suppressed fury.

For a moment the Clutching Hand stopped to consider. Then he
seized the regular telephone.

"Dr. Morton?" he asked as he got the number he called.

Late as it was the doctor, who was a well-known surgeon in that
part of the country, answered, apparently from an extension of his
telephone near his bed.

The call was urgent and apparently from a family which he did not
feel that he could neglect.

"Yes, I'll be there--in a few moments," he yawned, hanging up the
receiver and getting out of bed.

Dr. Morton was a middle-aged man, one of those medical men in
whose judgment one instinctively relies. From the brief
description of the "hemorrhage" which the Clutching Hand had
cleverly made over the wire, he knew that a life was at stake.
Quickly he dressed and went out to his garage, back of the house
to get his little runabout.

It was only a matter of minutes before the doctor was speeding
over the now deserted suburban roads, apparently on his errand of
mercy.

At the address that had been given him, he drew up to the side of
the road, got out and ran up the steps to the door. A ring at the
bell brought a sleepy man to the door, in his trousers and
nightshirt.

"How's the patient?" asked Dr. Morton, eagerly.

"Patient?" repeated the man, rubbing his eyes. "There's no one
sick here."

"Then what did you telephone for?" asked the doctor peevishly,

"Telephone? I didn't call up anyone, I was asleep."

Slowly it dawned on the doctor that it was a false alarm and that
he must be the victim of some practical joke.

"Well, that's a great note," he growled, as the man shut the door.

He descended the steps, muttering harsh language at some unknown
trickster. As he climbed back into his machine and made ready to
start, two men seemed to rise before him, as if from nowhere.

As a matter of fact, they had been sent there by the Clutching
Hand and were hiding in a nearby cellar way until their chance
came.

One man stood on the running board, on either side of him, and two
guns yawned menacingly at him.

"Drive ahead--that way!" muttered one man, seating himself in the
runabout with his gun close to the doctor's ribs.

The other kept his place on the running board, and on they drove
in the direction of the mysterious, dark house. Half a mile,
perhaps, down the road, they halted and left the car beside the
walk.

Dr. Morton was too surprised to marvel at anything now and he
realized that he was in the power of two desperate men. Quickly,
they blindfolded him.

It seemed an interminable walk, as they led him about to confuse
him, but at last he could feel that they had taken him into a
house and along passageways, which they were making unnecessarily
long in order to destroy all recollection that they could. Finally
he knew that he was in a room in which others were present. He
suppressed a shudder at the low, menacing voices.

A moment later he felt them remove the bandage from his eyes, and,
blinking at the light, he could see a hard-faced fellow, pale and
weak, on a blood-stained couch. Over him bent a masked man and
another man stood nearby, endeavoring by improvised bandages to
stop the flow of blood.

"What can you do for this fellow?" asked the masked man.

Dr. Morton, seeing nothing else to do, for he was more than
outnumbered now, bent down and examined him.

As he rose, he said, "He will be dead from loss of blood by
morning, no matter if he is properly bandaged."

"Is there nothing that can save him?" whispered the Clutching Hand
hoarsely.

"Blood transfusion might save him," replied the Doctor. "But so
much blood would be needed that whoever gives it would be liable
to die himself."

Clutching Hand stood silent a moment, thinking, as he gazed at the
man who had been one of his chief reliances. Then, with a menacing
gesture, he spoke in a low, bitter tone.

"SHE WHO SHOT HIM SHALL SUPPLY THE BLOOD."

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

A few quick directions followed to his subordinates, and as he
made ready to go, he muttered, "Keep the doctor here. Don't let
him stir from the room."

Then, with the man who had aided him in the murder of Taylor
Dodge, he sallied out into the blackness that precedes dawn.

It was just before early daybreak when the Clutching Hand and his
confederate reached the Dodge House in the city and came up to the
back door, over the fences. As they stood there, the Clutching
Hand produced a master key and started to open the door. But
before he did so, he took out his watch.

"Let me see," he ruminated. "Twenty minutes past four. At exactly
half past, I want you to do as I told you--see?"

The other crook nodded.

"You may go," ordered the Clutching Hand.

As the crook slunk away, Clutching Hand stealthily let himself
into the house. Noiselessly he prowled through the halls until he
came to Elaine's doorway.

He gave a hasty look up and down the hall. There was no sound.
Quickly he took a syringe from his pocket and bent down by the
door. Inserting the end under it, he squirted some liquid through
which vaporized rapidly in a wide, fine stream of spray. Before he
could give an alarm, Rusty was overcome by the noxious fumes,
rolled over on his back and lay still.

Outside, the other crook was waiting, looking at his watch. As the
hand slowly turned the half hour, he snapped the watch shut. With
a quick glance up and down the deserted street, he deftly started
up the rain pipe that passed near Elaine's window.

This time there was no faithful Rusty to give warning and the
second intruder, after a glance at Elaine, still sleeping, went
quickly to the door, dragged the insensible dog out of the way,
turned the key and admitted the Clutching Hand. As he did so he
closed the door.

Evidently the fumes had not reached Elaine, or if they had, the
inrush of fresh air revived her, for she waked and quickly reached
for the gun. In an instant the other crook had leaped at her.
Holding his hand over her mouth to prevent her screaming he
snatched the revolver away before she could fire it.

In the meantime the Clutching Hand had taken out some chloroform
and, rolling a towel in the form of a cone, placed it over her
face. She struggled, gasping and gagging, but the struggles grew
weaker and weaker and finally ceased altogether.

When Elaine was completely under the influence of the drug, they
lifted her out of bed, the chloroform cone still over her face,
and quietly carried her to the door which they opened stealthily.

Downstairs they carried her until they came to the library with
its new safe and there they placed her on a couch.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

At an early hour an express wagon stopped before the Dodge house
and Jennings, half dressed, answered the bell.

"We've come for that broken suit of armor to be repaired," said a
workman.

Jennings let the men in. The armor was still on the stand and the
repairers took armor, stand, and all, laying it on the couch where
they wrapped it in the covers they had brought for the purpose.
They lifted it up and started to carry it out.

"Be careful," cautioned the thrifty Jennings.

Rusty, now recovered, was barking and sniffing at the armor.

"Kick the mutt off," growled one man.

The other did so and Rusty snarled and snapped at him. Jennings
took him by the collar and held him as the repairers went out,
loaded the armor on the wagon, and drove off.

Scarcely had they gone, while Jennings straightened out the
disarranged library, when Rusty began jumping about, barking
furiously. Jennings looked at him in amazement, as the dog ran to
the window and leaped out.

He had no time to look after the dog, though, for at that very
instant he heard a voice calling, "Jennings! Jennings!"

It was Marie, almost speechless. He followed her as she led the
way to Miss Elaine's room. There Marie pointed mutely at the bed.

Elaine was not there.

There, too, were her clothes, neatly folded, as Marie had hung
them for her.

"Something must have happened to her!" wailed Marie.

Jennings was now thoroughly alarmed.

Meanwhile the express wagon outside was driving off, with Rusty
tearing after it.

"What's the matter?" cried Aunt Josephine coming in where the
footman and the maid were arguing what was to be done.

She gave one look at the bed, the clothes, and the servants.

"Call Mr. Kennedy!" she cried in alarm.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

"Elaine is gone--no one knows how or where," announced Craig as he
leaped out of bed that morning to answer the furious ringing of
our telephone bell.

It was very early, but Craig dressed hurriedly and I followed as
best I could, for he had the start of me, tieless and collarless.

When we arrived at the Dodge house, Aunt Josephine and Marie were
fully dressed. Jennings let us in.

"What has happened?" demanded Kennedy breathlessly.

While Aunt Josephine tried to tell him, Craig was busy examining
the room.

"Let us see the library," he said at length.

Accordingly down to the library we went. Kennedy looked about. He
seemed to miss something.

"Where is the armor?" he demanded.

"Why, the men came for it and took it away to repair," answered
Jennings.

Kennedy's brow clouded in deep thought.

Outside we had left our taxi, waiting. The door was open and a new
footman, James, was sweeping the rug, when past him flashed a
dishevelled hairy streak.

We were all standing there still as Craig questioned Jennings
about the armor. With a yelp Rusty tore frantically into the room.
A moment he stopped and barked. We all looked at him in surprise.
Then, as no one moved, he seemed to single out Kennedy. He seized
Craig's coat in his teeth and tried to drag him out.

"Here, Rusty--down, sir, down!" called Jennings.

"No, Jennings, no," interposed Craig. "What's the matter, old
fellow?"

Craig patted Rusty whose big brown eyes seemed mutely appealing.
Out of the doorway he went, barking still. Craig and I followed
while the rest stood in the vestibule.

Rusty was trying to lead Kennedy down the street!

"Wait here," called Kennedy to Aunt Josephine, as he stepped with
me on the running board of the cab. "Go on, Rusty, good dog!"

Rusty needed no urging. With an eager yelp he started off, still
barking, ahead of us, our car following. On we went, much to the
astonishment of those who were on the street at such an early
hour.

It seemed miles that we went, but at last we came to a peculiarly
deserted looking house. Here Rusty turned in and began scratching
at the door. We jumped off the cab and followed.

The door was locked when we tried and from inside we could get no
answer. We put our shoulders to it and burst it in. Rusty gave a
leap forward with a joyous bark.

We followed, more cautiously. There were pieces of armor strewn
all over the floor. Rusty sniffed at them and looked about,
disappointed, then howled.

I looked from the armor to Kennedy, in blank amazement.

"Elaine was kidnapped--in the armor," he cried.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

He was right. Meanwhile, the armor repairers had stopped at last
at this apparently deserted house, a strange sort of repair shop.
Still keeping it wrapped in blankets, they had taken the armor out
of the wagon and now laid it down on an old broken bed. Then they
had unwrapped it and taken off the helmet.

There was Elaine!

She had been stupefied, bound and gagged. Piece after piece of the
armor they removed, finding her still only half conscious.

"Sh! What's that?" cautioned one of the men. They paused and
listened. Sure enough, there was a sound outside. They opened the
window cautiously. A dog was scratching on the door, endeavoring
to get in. It was Rusty.

"I think it's her dog," said the man, turning. "We'd better let
him in. Someone might see him."

The other nodded and a moment later the door opened and in ran
Rusty. Straight to Elaine he went, starting to lick her hand.

"Right--her dog," exclaimed the other man, drawing a gun and
hastily levelling it at Rusty.

"Don't!" cautioned the first. "It would make too much noise. You'd
better choke him!"

The fellow grabbed for Rusty. Rusty was too quick. He jumped.
Around the room they ran. Rusty saw the wide open window--and his
chance. Out he went and disappeared, leaving the man cussing at
him.

A moment's argument followed, then they wrapped Elaine in the
blankets alone, still bound and gagged, and carried her out.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

In the secret den, the Clutching Hand was waiting, gazing now and
then at his watch, and then at the wounded man before him. In a
chair his first assistant sat, watching Dr. Morton.

A knock at the door caused them to turn their heads. The crook
opened it and in walked the other crooks who had carried off
Elaine in the suit of armor.

Elaine was now almost conscious, as they sat her down in a chair
and partly loosed her bonds and the gag. She gazed about,
frightened.

"Oh--help! help!" she screamed as she caught sight of the now
familiar mask of the Clutching Hand.

"Call all you want--here, young lady," he laughed unnaturally. "No
one can hear. These walls are soundproof!"

Elaine shrank back.

"Now, doc.," he added harshly to Dr. Morton. "It was she who shot
him. Her blood must save him."

Dr. Morton recoiled at the thought of torturing the beautiful
young girl before him.

"Are--you willing--to have your blood transfused?" he parleyed.

"No--no--no!" she cried in horror,

Dr. Morton turned to the desperate criminal. "I cannot do it."

"The deuce you can't!" A cold steel revolver pressed down on Dr.
Morton's stomach. In the other hand the master crook held his
watch.

"You have just one minute to make up your mind."

Dr. Morton shrank back. The revolver followed. The pressure of a
fly's foot meant eternity for him.

"I--I'll try!"

The other crooks next carried Elaine, struggling, and threw her
down beside the wounded man. Together they arranged another couch
beside him.

Dr. Morton, still covered by the gun, bent over the two, the
hardened criminal and the delicate, beautiful girl. Clutching Hand
glared fiendishly, insanely.

From his bag he took a little piece of something that shone like
silver. It was in the form of a minute, hollow cylinder, with two
grooves on it, a cylinder so tiny that it would scarcely have
slipped over the point of a pencil.

"A cannulla," he explained, as he prepared to make an incision in
Elaine's arm and in the arm of the wounded rogue.

He cuffed it over the severed end of the artery, so cleverly that
the inner linings of the vein and artery, the endothelium as it is
called, were in complete contact with each other.

Clutching Hand watched eagerly, as though he had found some new,
scientific engine of death in the little hollow cylinder.

A moment and the blood that was, perhaps, to save the life of the
wounded felon was coursing into his veins from Elaine.

A moment later, Dr. Morton looked up at the Clutching Hand and
nodded, "Well, it's working!"

At Elaine's head, Clutching Hand himself was administering just
enough ether to keep her under and prevent a struggle that would
wreck all. The wounded man had not been anesthetized and seemed
feebly conscious of what was being done to save him.

All were now bending over the two.

Dr. Morton bent closest over Elaine. He looked at her anxiously,
felt her pulse, watched her breathing, then pursed up his lips.

"This is--dangerous," he ventured, gazing askance at the grim
Clutching Hand.

"Can't help it," came back laconically and relentlessly.

The doctor shuddered.

The man was a veritable vampire!

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Outside the deserted house, Kennedy and I were looking helplessly
about.

Suddenly Kennedy dashed back and reappeared a minute later with a
couple of pieces of armor. He held them down to Rusty and the dog
sniffed at them.

But Rusty stood still.

Kennedy pointed to the ground.

Nothing doing. In leading us where he had been before, Rusty had
reached the end of his canine ability.

Everything we could do to make Rusty understand that we wanted him
to follow a trail was unavailing. He simply could not do it.
Kennedy coaxed and scolded. Rusty merely sat up on his hind legs
and begged with those irresistible brown eyes.

"You can't make a bloodhound out of a collie," despaired Craig,
looking about again helplessly.

Then he reached into his pocket and pulled out a police whistle.
He blew three sharp blasts.

Would it bring help?

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

While we were thus despairing, the continued absence of Dr. Morton
from home had alarmed his family and had set in motion another
train of events.

When he did not return, and could not be located at the place to
which he was supposed to have gone, several policemen had been
summoned to his house, and they had come, finally, with real
bloodhounds from a suburban station.

There were the tracks of his car. That the police themselves could
follow, while two men came along holding in leash the pack,
leaders of which were "Searchlight" and "Bob."

It had not been long before the party came across the deserted
runabout beside the road. There they had stopped, for a moment.

It was just then that they heard Kennedy's call, and one of them
had been detailed to answer it.

"Well, what do YOU want?" asked the officer, eyeing Kennedy
suspiciously as he stood there with the armor. "What's them pieces
of tin--hey?"

Kennedy quickly flashed his own special badge. "I want to trail a
girl," he exclaimed hurriedly. "Can I find a bloodhound about
here?"

"A hound? Why, we have a pack--over there."

"Bring them--quick!" ordered Craig.

The policeman, who was an intelligent fellow, saw at once that, as
Kennedy said, the two trails probably crossed. He shouted and in a
few seconds the others, with the pack, came.

A brief parley resulted in our joining forces.

Kennedy held the armor down to the dogs. "Searchlight" gave a low
whine, then, followed by "Bob" and the others, was off, all with
noses close to the ground. We followed.

The armor was, after all, the missing link.

Through woods and fields the dogs led us.

Would we be in time to rescue Elaine?

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

In the mysterious haunt of the Clutching Hand, all were still
standing around Elaine and the wounded Pitts Slim.

Just then a cry from one of the group startled the rest. One of
them, less hardened than the Clutching Hand, had turned away from
the sight, had gone to the window, and had been attracted by
something outside.

"Look!" he cried.

From the absolute stillness of death, there was now wild
excitement among the crooks.

"Police! Police!" they shouted to each other as they fled by a
doorway to a secret passage.

Clutching Hand turned to his first assistant.

"You--go--too," he ordered.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

The dogs had led us to a strange looking house, and were now
baying and leaping up against the door. We did not stop to knock,
but began to break through, for inside we could hear faintly
sounds of excitement and cries of "Police--police!"

The door yielded and we rushed into a long hallway. Up the passage
we went until we came to another door.

An instant and we were all against it. It was stout, but it shook
before us. The panels began to yield.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

On the other side of that door from us, the master crook stood for
a moment. Dr. Morton hesitated, not knowing quite what to do.

Just then the wounded Pitts Slim lifted his hand feebly. He seemed
vaguely to understand that the game was up. He touched the
Clutching Hand.

"You did your best, Chief," he murmured thickly. "Beat it, if you
can. I'm a goner, anyway."

Clutching Hand hesitated by the wounded crook. This was the
loyalty of gangland, worthy a better cause. He could not bring
himself to desert his pal. He was undecided, still.

But there was the door, bulging, and a panel bursting.

He moved over to a panel in the wall and pushed a spring. It slid
open and he stepped through. Then it closed--not a second too
soon.

Back in his private room, he quickly stepped to a curtained iron
door. Pushing back the curtains, he went through it and
disappeared, the curtains falling back.

At the end of the passageway, he stopped, in a sort of grotto or
cave. As he came out, he looked back. All was still. No one was
about. He was safe here, at least!

Off came the mask and he turned down the road a few rods distant
beyond some bushes, as little concerned about the wild happenings
as any other passer-by might have been.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

At the very moment when we burst in, Dr. Morton, seeing his
chance, stopped the blood transfusion, working frantically to stop
the flow of blood.

Kennedy sprang to Elaine's side, horrified by the blood that had
spattered over everything.

With a mighty effort he checked a blow that he had aimed at Dr.
Morton, as it flashed over him that the surgeon, now free again,
was doing his best to save the terribly imperilled life of Elaine.

Just then the police burst through the secret panel and rushed on,
leaving us alone, with the unconscious, scarcely breathing Elaine.
From the sounds we could tell that they had come to the private
room of the Clutching Hand. It was empty and they were non-
plussed.

"Not a window!" called one.

"What are those curtains?"

They pulled them back, disclosing an iron door. They tried it but
it was bolted on the other side. Blows had no effect. They had to
give it up for the instant.

A policeman now stood beside Elaine and the wounded burglar who
was muttering deliriously to himself.

He was pretty far gone, as the policeman knelt down and tried to
get a statement out of him.

"Who was that man who left you--last--the Clutching Hand?"

Not a word came from the crook.

The policeman repeated his question.

With his last strength, he looked disdainfully at the officer's
pad and pencil. "The gangster never squeals," he snarled, as he
fell back.

Dr. Morton had paid no attention whatever to him, but was working
desperately now over Elaine, trying to bring her oack to life.

"Is she--going to--die?" gasped Craig, frantically.

Every eye was riveted on Dr. Morton.

"She is all right," he muttered. "But the man is going to die."

At the sound of Craig's voice Elaine had feebly opened her eyes.

"Thank heaven," breathed Craig, with a sigh of relief, as his hand
gently stroked Elaine's unnaturally cold forehead.




CHAPTER VII

THE DOUBLE TRAP


Mindful of the sage advice that a time of peace is best employed
in preparing for war, I was busily engaged in cleaning my
automatic gun one morning as Kennedy and I were seated in our
living room.

Our door buzzer sounded and Kennedy, always alert, jumped up,
pushing aside a great pile of papers which had accumulated in the
Dodge case.

Two steps took him to the wall where the day before he had
installed a peculiar box about four by six inches long connected
in some way with a lens-like box of similar size above our bell
and speaking tube in the hallway below. He opened it, disclosing
an oblong plate of ground glass.

"I thought the seismograph arrangement was not quite enough after
that spring-gun affair," he remarked, "so I have put in a sort of
teleview of my own invention--so that I can see down into the
vestibule downstairs. Well--just look who's here!"

"Some new fandangled periscope arrangement, I suppose?" I queried
moving slowly over toward it.

However, one look was enough to interest me. I can express it only
in slang. There, framed in the little thing, was a vision of as
swell a "chicken" as I have ever seen.

I whistled under my breath.

"Um!" I exclaimed shamelessly, "A peach! Who's your friend?"

I had never said a truer word than in my description of her,
though I did not know it at the time. She was indeed known as
"Gertie the Peach" in the select circle to which she belonged.

Gertie was very attractive, though frightfully over-dressed. But,
then, no one thinks anything of that now, in New York.

Kennedy had opened the lower door and our fair visitor was coming
upstairs. Meanwhile he was deeply in thought before the
"teleview." He made up his mind quickly, however.

"Go in there, Walter," he said, seizing me quickly and pushing me
into my room. "I want you to wait there and watch her carefully."

I slipped the gun into my pocket and went, just as a knock at the
door told me she was outside.

Kennedy opened the door, disclosing a very excited young woman.

"Oh, Professor Kennedy," she cried, all in one breath, with much
emotion, "I'm so glad I found you in. I can't tell you. Oh--my
jewels! They have been stolen--and my husband must not know of it.
Help me to recover them--please!"

She had not paused, but had gone on in a wild, voluble
explanation.

"Just a moment, my dear young lady," interrupted Craig, finding at
last a chance to get a word in edgewise. "Do you see that table--
and all those papers? Really, I can't take your case. I am too
busy as it is even to take the cases of many of my own clients."

"But, please, Professor Kennedy--please!" she begged. "Help me. It
means--oh, I can't tell you how much it means to me!"

She had come close to him and had laid her warm, little soft hand
on his, in ardent entreaty.

From my hiding place in my room, I could not help seeing that she
was using every charm of her sex and personality to lure him on,
as she clung confidingly to him. Craig was very much embarrassed,
and I could not help a smile at his discomfiture. Seriously, I
should have hated to have been in his position.

Gertie had thrown her arms about Kennedy, as if in wildest
devotion. I wondered what Elaine would have thought, if she had a
picture of that!

"Oh," she begged him, "please--please, help me!"

Still Kennedy seemed utterly unaffected by her passionate embrace.
Carefully he loosened her fingers from about his neck and removed
the plump, enticing arms.

Gertie sank into a chair, weeping, while Kennedy stood before her
a moment in deep abstraction.

Finally he seemed to make up his mind to something. His manner
toward her changed. He took a step to her side.

"I WILL help you," he said, laying his hand on her shoulder. "If
it is possible I will recover your jewels. Where do you live?"

"At Hazlehurst," she replied, gratefully. "Oh, Mr. Kennedy, how
can I ever thank you?"

She seemed overcome with gratitude and took his hand, pressed it,
even kissed it.

"Just a minute," he added, carefully extricating his hand. "I'll
be ready in just a minute."

Kennedy entered the room where I was listening.

"What's it all about, Craig?" I whispered, mystified.

For a moment he stood thinking, apparently reconsidering what he
had just done. Then his second thought seemed to approve it.

"This is a trap of the Clutching Hand, Walter," he whispered,
adding tensely, "and we're going to walk right into it."

I looked at him in amazement.

"But, Craig," I demurred, "that's foolhardy. Have her trailed--
anything--but---"

He shook his head and with a mere motion of his hand brushed aside
my objections as he went to a cabinet across the room.

From one shelf he took out a small metal box and from another a
test tube, placing the test tube in his waistcoat pocket, and the
small box in his coatpocket, with excessive care.

Then he turned and motioned to me to follow him out into the other
room. I did so, stuffing my "gatt" into my pocket.

"Let me introduce my friend, Mr. Jameson," said Craig, presenting
me to the pretty crook.

The introduction quickly over, we three went out to get Craig's
car which he kept at a nearby garage.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

That forenoon, Perry Bennett was reading up a case. In the outer
office Milton Schofield, his office boy, was industriously chewing
gum and admiring his feet cocked up on the desk before him.

The door to the waiting room opened and an attractive woman of
perhaps thirty, dressed in extreme mourning, entered with a boy.

Milton cast a glance of scorn at the "little dude." He was in
reality about fourteen years old but was dressed to look much
younger.

Milton took his feet down in deference to the lady, but snickered
openly at the boy. A fight seemed imminent.

"Did you wish to see Mr. Bennett?" asked the precocious Milton
politely on one hand while on the other he made a wry grimace.

"Yes--here is my card," replied the woman.

It was deeply bordered in black. Even Milton was startled at
reading it: "Mrs. Taylor Dodge."

He looked at the woman in open-mouthed astonishment. Even he knew
that Elaine's mother had been dead for years.

The woman, however, true to her name in the artistic coterie in
which she was leader, had sunk into a chair and was sobbing
convulsively, as only "Weepy Mary" could.

It was so effective that even Milton was visibly moved. He took
the card in, excitedly, to Bennett.

"There's a woman outside--says she is Mrs. Dodge!" he cried.

If Milton had had an X-ray eye he could have seen her take a
cigarette from her handbag and light it nonchalantly the moment he
was gone.

As for Bennett, Milton, who was watching him closely, thought he
was about to discharge him on the spot for bothering him. He took
the card, and his face expressed the most extreme surprise, then
anger. He thought a moment.

"Tell that woman to state her business in writing," he thundered
curtly at Milton.

As the boy turned to go back to the waiting room, Weepy Mary,
hearing him coming, hastily shoved the cigarette into her "son's"
hand.

"Mr. Bennett says for you to write out what it is you want to see
him about," reported Milton, indicating the table before which she
was sitting.

Mary had automatically taken up sobbing, with the release of the
cigarette. She looked at the table on which were letter paper,
pens and ink.

"I may write here?" she asked.

"Surely, ma'am," replied Milton, still very much overwhelmed by
her sorrow.

Weepy Mary sat there, writing and sobbing.

In the midst of his sympathy, however, Milton sniffed. There was
an unmistakable odor of tobacco smoke about the room. He looked
sharply at the "son" and discovered the still smoking cigarette.

It was too much for Milton's outraged dignity. Bennett did not
allow him that coveted privilege. This upstart could not usurp it.

He reached over and seized the boy by the arm and swung him around
till he faced a sign in the corner on the wall.

"See?" he demanded.

The sign read courteously:

  "No Smoking in This Office--Please.   "PERRY BENNETT."

"Leggo my arm," snarled the "son," putting the offending cigarette
defiantly into his mouth.

Milton coolly and deliberately reached over and, with an
exaggerated politeness swiftly and effectively removed it,
dropping it on the floor and stamping defiantly on it.

"Son" raised his fists pugnaciously, for he didn't care much for
the role he was playing, anyhow.

Milton did the same.

There was every element of a gaudy mix-up, when the outer door of
the office suddenly swung open and Elaine Dodge entered.

Gallantry was Milton's middle name and he sprang forward to hold
the door, and then opened Bennett's door, as he ushered in Elaine.

As she passed "Weepy Mary," who was still writing at the table and
crying bitterly, Elaine hesitated and looked at her curiously.
Even after Milton had opened Bennett's door, she could not resist
another glance. Instinctively Elaine seemed to scent trouble.

Bennett was still studying the black-bordered card, when she
greeted him.

"Who is that woman?" she asked, still wondering about the identity
of the Niobe outside.

At first he said nothing. But finally, seeing that she had noticed
it, he handed Elaine the card, reluctantly.

Elaine read it with a gasp. The look of surprise that crossed her
face was terrible.

Before she could say anything, however, Milton had returned with
the sheet of paper on which "Weepy Mary" had written and handed it
to Bennett.

Bennett read it with uncontrolled astonishment.

"What is it?" demanded Elaine.

He handed it to her and she read:

"As the lawful wife and widow of Taylor Dodge, I demand my son's
rights and my own.

"MRS. TAYLOR DODGE."

Elaine gasped at it.

"She--my father's wife!" she exclaimed, "What effrontery! What
does she mean?"

Bennett hesitated.

"Tell me," Elaine cried, "Is there--can there be anything in it?
No--no--there isn't!"

Bennett spoke in a low tone. "I have heard a whisper of some
scandal or other connected with your father--but--" He paused.

Elaine was first shocked, then indignant.

"Why--such a thing is absurd. Show the woman in!"

"No--please--Miss Dodge. Let me deal with her."

By this time Elaine was furious.

"Yes--I WILL see her."

She pressed the button on Bennett's desk and Milton responded.

"Milton, show the--the woman in," she ordered, "and that boy,
too."

As Milton turned to crook his finger at "Weepy Mary," she nodded
surreptitiously and dug her fingers sharply into "son's" ribs.

"Yell--you little fool,--yell," she whispered.

Obedient to his "mother's" commands, and much to Milton's disgust,
the boy started to cry in close imitation of his elder.

Elaine was still holding the paper in her hands when they entered.

"What does all this mean?" she demanded.

"Weepy Mary," between sobs, managed to blurt out, "You are Miss
Elaine Dodge, aren't you? Well, it means that your father married
me when I was only seventeen and this boy is his son--your half
brother."

"No--never," cried Elaine vehemently, unable to restrain her
disgust. "He never married again. He was too devoted to the memory
of my mother."

"Weepy Mary" smiled cynically. "Come with me and I will show you
the church records and the minister who married us."

"You will?" repeated Elaine defiantly. "Well, I'll just do as you
ask. Mr. Bennett shall go with me."

"No, no, Miss Dodge--don't go. Leave the matter to me," urged
Bennett. "I will take care of HER. Besides, I must be in court in
twenty minutes."

Elaine paused, but she was thoroughly aroused.

"Then I will go with her myself," she cried defiantly.

In spite of every objection that Bennett made, "Weepy Mary," her
son, and Elaine went out to call a taxicab to take them to the
railroad station where they could catch a train to the little town
where the woman asserted she had been married.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Meanwhile, before a little country church in the town, a closed
automobile had drawn up.

As the door opened, a figure, humped up and masked, alighted.

It was the Clutching Hand.

The car had scarcely pulled away, when he gave a long rap,
followed by two short taps, at the door of the vestry, a secret
code, evidently.

Inside the vestry room a well-dressed man but with a very sinister
face heard the knock and a second later opened the door.

"What--not ready yet?" growled the Clutching Hand. "Quick--now--
get on those clothes. I heard the train whistle as I came in the
car. In which closet does the minister keep them?"

The crook, without a word, went to a closet and took out a suit of
clothes of ministerial cut. Then he hastily put them on, adding
some side-whiskers, which he had brought with him.

At about the same time, Elaine, acompanied by "Weepy Mary" and her
"son," had arrived at the little tumble-down station and had taken
the only vehicle in sight, a very ancient carriage.

It ambled along until, at last, it pulled up before the vestry
room door of the church, just as the bogus minister was finishing
his transformation from a frank crook. Clutching Hand was giving
him final instructions.

Elaine and the others alighted and approached the church, while
the ancient vehicle rattled away.

"They're coming," whispered the crook, peering cautiously out of
the window.

Clutching Hand moved silently and snake-like into the closet and
shut the door.

"How do you do, Dr. Carton?" greeted "Weepy Mary." "I guess you
don't remember me."

The clerical gentleman looked at her fixedly a moment.

"Remember you?" he repeated. "Of course, my dear. I remember
everyone I marry."

"And you remember to whom you married me?"

"Perfectly. To an older man--a Taylor Dodge."

Elaine was overcome.

"Won't you step in?" he asked suavely. "Your friend here doesn't
seem well."

They all entered.

"And you--you say--you married this--this woman to Taylor Dodge?"
queried Elaine, tensely.

The bogus minister seemed to be very fatherly. "Yes," he assented,
"I certainly did so."

"Have you the record?" asked Elaine, fighting to the last.

"Why, yes. I can show you the record."

He moved over to the closet. "Come over here," he asked.

He opened the door. Elaine screamed and drew back. There stood her
arch enemy, the Clutching Hand himself.

As he stepped forth, she turned, wildly, to run--anywhere. But
strong arms seized her and forced her into a chair.

She looked at the woman and the minister. It was a plot!

A moment Clutching Hand looked Elaine over. "Put the others out,"
he ordered the other crook.

Quickly the man obeyed, leading "Weepy Mary" and her "son" to the
door, and waving them away as he locked it. They left, quite as
much in the dark about the master criminal's identity as Elaine.

"Now, my pretty dear," began the Clutching Hand as the lock turned
in the vestry door, "we shall be joined shortly by your friend,
Craig Kennedy, and," he added with a leer, "I think your rather
insistent search for a certain person will cease."

Elaine drew back in the chair, horrified, at the implied threat.

Clutching Hand laughed, diabolically.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

While these astounding events were transpiring in the little
church, Kennedy and I had been tearing across the country in his
big car, following the directions of our fair friend.

We stopped at last before a prosperous, attractive-looking house
and entered a very prettily furnished but small parlor. Heavy
portieres hung over the doorway into the hall, over another into a
back room and over the bay windows.

"Won't you sit down a moment?" coaxed Gertie. "I'm quite blown to
pieces after that ride. My, how you drive!"

As she pulled aside the hall portieres, three men with guns thrust
their hands out. I turned. Two others had stepped from the back
room and two more from the bay window. We were surrounded. Seven
guns were aimed at us with deadly precision.

"No--no--Walter--it's no use," shouted Kennedy calmly restraining
my hand which I had clapped on my own gun.

At the same time, with his other hand, he took from his pocket the
small can which I had seen him place there, and held it aloft.

"Gentlemen," he said quietly. "I suspected some such thing. I have
here a small box of fulminate of mercury. If I drop it, this
building and the entire vicinity will be blown to atoms. Go ahead-
-shoot!" he added, nonchalantly.

The seven of them drew back, rather hurriedly.

Kennedy was a dangerous prisoner.

He calmly sat down in an arm chair, leaning back as he carefully
balanced the deadly little box of fulminate of mercury on his
knee. He placed his finger tips together and smiled at the seven
crooks, who had gathered together, staring breathlessly at this
man who toyed with death.

Gertie ran from the room.

For a moment they looked at each other, undecided, then one by
one, they stepped away from Kennedy toward the door.

The leader was the last to go. He had scarcely taken a step.

"Stop!" ordered Kennedy.

The crook did so. As Craig moved toward him, he waited, cold sweat
breaking out on his face.

"Say," he whined, "you let me be!"

It was ineffectual. Kennedy, still smiling confidently, came
closer, still holding the deadly little box, balanced between two
fingers.

He took the crook's gun and dropped it into his pocket.

"Sit down!" ordered Craig.

Outside, the other six parleyed in hoarse whispers. One raised a
gun, but the woman and the others restrained him and fled.

"Take me to your master!" demanded Kennedy.

The crook remained silent.

"Where is he?" repeated Craig. "Tell me!"

Still the man remained silent. Craig looked the fellow over again.
Then, still with that confident smile, he reached into his inside
pocket and drew forth the tube I had seen him place there.

"No matter how much YOU accuse me," added Craig casually, "no one
will ever take the word of a crook that a reputable scientist like
me would do what I am about to do."

He had taken out his penknife and opened it. Then he beckoned to
me.

"Bare his arm and hold his wrist, Walter," he said.

Craig bent down with the knife and the tube, then paused a moment
and turned the tube so that we could see it.

On the label were the ominous words:

Germ culture 6248A Bacillus Leprae (Leprosy)

Calmly he took the knife and proceeded to make an incision in the
man's arm. The crook's feelings underwent a terrific struggle.

"No--no--no--don't," he implored. "I will take you to the
Clutching Hand--even if it kills me!"

Kennedy stepped back, replacing the tube in his pocket.

"Very well, go ahead!" he agreed.

We followed the crook, Craig still holding the deadly box of
fulminate of mercury carefully balanced so that if anyone shot him
from a hiding place it would drop.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

No sooner had we gone than Gertie hurried to the nearest telephone
to inform the Clutching Hand of our escape.

Elaine had sunk back into the chair, as the telephone rang.
Clutching Hand answered it.

A moment later, in uncontrollable fury he hurled the instrument to
the floor.

"Here--we've got to act quickly--that devil has escaped again," he
hissed. "We must get her away. You keep her here. I'll be back--
right away--with a car."

He dashed madly from the church, pulling off his mask as he gained
the street.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Kennedy had forced the crook ahead of us into the car which was
waiting and I followed, taking the wheel this time.

"Which way, now--quick!" demanded Craig, "And if you get me in
wrong--I've got that tube yet--you remember."

Our crook started off with a whole burst of directions that
rivalled the motor guide--"through the town, following trolley
tracks, jog right, jog left under the R. R. bridge, leaving
trolley tracks; at cemetery turn left, stopping at the old stone
church."

"Is this it?" asked Craig incredulously.

"Yes--as I live," swore the crook in a cowed voice.

He had gone to pieces. Kennedy jumped from the machine.

"Here, take this gun, Walter," he said to me. "Don't take your
eyes off the fellow--keep him covered."

Craig walked around the church, out of sight, until he came to a
small vestry window and looked in.

There was Elaine, sitting in a chair, and near her stood an
elderly looking man in clerical garb, which to Craig's trained eye
was quite evidently a disguise.

Elaine happened just then to glance at the window and her eyes
grew wide with astonishment at the sight of Craig.

He made a hasty motion to her to make a dash for the door. She
nodded quietly.

With a glance at her guardian, she suddenly made a rush.

He was at her in a moment, pouncing on her, cat-like.

Kennedy had seized an iron bar that lay beside the window where
some workmen had been repairing the stone pavement, and, with a
blow shattered the glass and the sash.

At the sound of the smashing glass the crook turned and with a
mighty effort threw Elaine aside, drawing his revolver. As he
raised it, Elaine sprang at him and frantically seized his wrist.

Utterly merciless, the man brought the butt of the gun down with
full force on Elaine's head. Only her hat and hair saved her, but
she sank unconscious.

Then he turned at Craig and fired twice.

One shot grazed Craig's hat, but the other struck him in the
shoulder and Kennedy reeled.

With a desperate effort he pulled himself together and leaped
forward again, closing with the fellow and wrenching the gun from
him before he could fire again.

It fell to the floor with a clang.

Just then the man broke away and made a dash for the door leading
back into the church itself, with Kennedy after him. At the foot
of a flight of stairs, he turned long enough to pick up a chair.
As Kennedy came on, he deliberately smashed it over Craig's head.

Kennedy warded off the blow as best he could, then, still
undaunted, started up the stairs after the fellow.

Up they went, into the choir loft and then into the belfry itself.
There they came to sheer hand to hand struggle. Kennedy tripped on
a loose board and would have fallen backwards, if he had not been
able to recover himself just in time. The crook, desperate, leaped
for the ladder leading further up into the steeple. Kennedy
followed.

Elaine had recovered consciousness almost immediately and, hearing
the commotion, stirred and started to rise and look about.

From the church she could hear sounds of the struggle. She paused
just long enough to seize the crook's revolver lying on the floor.

She hurried into the church and up into the belfry, thence up the
ladder, whence the sounds came.

The crook by this time had gained the outside of the steeple
through an opening. Kennedy was in close pursuit.

On the top of the steeple was a great gilded cross, considerably
larger than a man. As the crook clambered outside, he scaled the
steeple, using a lightning rod and some projecting points to pull
himself up, desperately.

Kennedy followed unhesitatingly.

There they were, struggling in deadly combat, clinging to the
gilded cross.

The first I knew of it was a horrified gasp from my own crook. I
looked up carefully, fearing it was a stall to get me off my
guard. There were Kennedy and the other crook, struggling, swaying
back and forth, between life and death.

I looked at my man. What should I do? Should I leave him and go to
Craig? If I did, might he not pick us both off, from a safe
vantage point, by some sharp-shooting skill?

There was nothing I could do.

Kennedy was clinging to a lightning rod on the cross.

It broke.

I gasped as Craig reeled back. But he managed to catch hold of the
rod further down and cling to it.

The crook seemed to exult diabolically. Holding with both hands to
the cross, he let himself out to his full length and stamped on
Kennedy's fingers, trying every way to dislodge him. It was all
Kennedy could do to keep his hold.

I cried out in agony at the sight, for he had dislodged one of
Craig's hands. The other could not hold on much longer. He was
about to fall.

Just then I saw a face at the little window opening out from the
ladder to the outside of the steeple--a woman's face, tense with
horror.

It was Elaine!

Quickly a hand followed and in it was a revolver.

Just as the crook was about to dislodge Kennedy's other hand, I
saw a flash and a puff of smoke and a second later, heard a
report--and another--and another.

Horrors!

The crook who had taken refuge seemed to stagger back, wildly,
taking a couple of steps in the thin air.

Kennedy regained his hold.

With a sickening thud, the body of the crook landed on the ground
around the corner of the church from me.

"Come--you!" I ground out, covering my own crook with the pistol,
"and if you attempt a getaway, I'll kill you, too!"

He followed, trembling, unnerved.

We bent over the man. It seemed that every bone in his body must
be broken. He groaned, and before I could even attempt anything
for him, he was dead.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

As Kennedy let himself slowly and painfully down the lightning
rod, Elaine seized him and, with all her strength, pulled him in
through the window.

He was quite weak now from loss of blood.

"Are you--all right?" she gasped, as they reached the foot of the
ladder in the belfry.

Craig looked down at his torn and soiled clothes. Then, in spite
of the smarting pain of his wounds, he smiled, "Yes--all right!"
"Thank heaven!" she murmured fervently, trying to staunch the flow
of blood.

Craig gazed at her eagerly. The great look of relief in her face
seemed to take away all the pain from his own face. In its place
came a look of wonder--and hope.

He could not resist.

"This time--it was you--saved me!" he cried, "Elaine!"

Involuntarily his arms sought hers--and he held her a moment,
looking deep into her wonderful eyes.

Then their faces came slowly together in their first kiss.




CHAPTER VIII

THE HIDDEN VOICE


"Jameson--wake up!"

The strain of the Dodge case was beginning to tell on me, for it
was keeping us at work at all kinds of hours to circumvent the
Clutching Hand, by far the cleverest criminal with whom Kennedy
had ever had anything to do.

I had slept later than usual that morning and, in a half doze, I
heard a voice calling me, strangely like Kennedy's and yet unlike
it.

I leaped out of bed, still in my pajamas, and stood for a moment
staring about. Then I ran into the living room. I looked about,
rubbing my eyes, startled. No one was there.

"Hey--Jameson--wake up!"

It was spooky.

I ran back into Craig's room. He was gone. There was no one in any
of our rooms. The surprise had now thoroughly awakened me.

"Where--the deuce--are you?" I demanded.

Suddenly I heard the voice again--no doubt about it, either.

"Here I am--over on the couch!"

I scratched my head, puzzled. There was certainly no one on that
couch.

A laugh greeted me. Plainly, though, it came from the couch. I
went over to it and, ridiculous as it seemed, began to throw aside
the pillows.

There lay nothing but a little oblong oaken box, perhaps eight or
ten inches long and three or four inches square at the ends. In
the face were two peculiar square holes and from the top projected
a black disc, about the size of a watch, fastened on a swinging
metal arm. In the face of the disc were several perforated holes.

I picked up the strange looking thing in wonder and from that
magic oak box actually came a burst of laughter.

"Come over to the laboratory, right away," pealed forth a merry
voice. "I've something to show you."

"Well," I gasped, "what do you know about that?"

Very early that morning Craig had got up, leaving me snoring.
Cases never wearied him. He thrived on excitement.

He had gone over to the laboratory and set to work in a corner
over another of those peculiar boxes, exactly like that which he
had already left in our rooms.

In the face of each of these boxes, as I have said, were two
square holes. The sides of these holes converged inward into the
box, in the manner of a four sided pyramid, ending at the apex in
a little circle of black, perhaps half an inch across.

Satisfied at last with his work, Craig had stood back from the
weird apparatus and shouted my name. He had enjoyed my surprise to
the fullest extent, then had asked me to join him.

Half an hour afterward I walked into the laboratory, feeling a
little sheepish over the practical joke, but none the less curious
to find out all about it.

"What is it?" I asked indicating the apparatus.

"A vocaphone," he replied, still laughing, "the loud speaking
telephone, the little box that hears and talks. It talks right out
in meeting, too--no transmitter to hold to the mouth, no receiver
to hold to the ear. You see, this transmitter is so sensitive that
it picks up even a whisper, and the receiver is placed back of
those two megaphone-like pyramids."

He was standing at a table, carefully packing up one of the
vocaphones and a lot of wire.

"I believe the Clutching Hand has been shadowing the Dodge house,"
he continued thoughtfully. "As long as we watch the place, too, he
will do nothing. But if we should seem, ostentatiously, not to be
watching, perhaps he may try something, and we may be able to get
a clue to his identity over this vocaphone. See?"

I nodded. "We've got to run him down somehow," I agreed.

"Yes," he said, taking his coat and hat. "I am going to connect up
one of these things in Miss Dodge's library and arrange with the
telephone company for a clear wire so that we can listen in here,
where that fellow will never suspect."

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

At about the same time that Craig and I sallied forth on this new
mission, Elaine was arranging some flowers on a stand near the
corner of the Dodge library where the secret panel was in which
her father had hidden the papers for the possession of which the
Clutching Hand had murdered him. They did not disclose his
identity, we knew, but they did give directions to at least one of
his hang-outs and were therefore very important.

She had moved away from the table, but, as she did so, her dress
caught in something in the woodwork. She tried to loosen it and in
so doing touched the little metallic spring on which her dress had
caught.

Instantly, to her utter surprise, the panel moved. It slid open,
disclosing a strong box.

Elaine took it amazed, looked at it a moment, then carried it to a
table and started to pry it open.

It was one of those tin dispatch boxes which, as far as I have
ever been able to determine, are chiefly valuable for allowing one
to place a lot of stuff in a receptacle which is very convenient
for a criminal. She had no trouble in opening it.

Inside were some papers, sealed in an envelope and marked "Limpy
Red Correspondence."

"They must be the Clutching Hand papers!" she exclaimed to
herself, hesitating a moment in doubt what to do. The fatal
documents seemed almost uncanny. Their very presence frightened
her. What should she do?

She seized the telephone and eagerly called Kennedy's number.

"Hello," answered a voice.

"Is that you, Craig?" she asked excitedly.

"No, this is Mr. Jameson."

"Oh, Mr. Jameson, I've discovered the Clutching Hand papers," she
began, more and more excited.

"Have you read them?" came back the voice quickly.

"No--shall I?"

"Then don't unseal them," cautioned the voice. "Put them back
exactly as you found them and I'll tell Mr. Kennedy the moment I
can get hold of him."

"All right," nodded Elaine. "I'll do that. And please get him--as
soon as you possibly can."

"I will."

"I'm going out shopping now," she returned, suddenly. "But, tell
him I'll be back--right away."

"Very well."

Hanging up the receiver, Elaine dutifully replaced the papers in
the box and returned the box to its secret hiding place, pressing
the spring and sliding the panel shut.

A few minutes later she left the house in the Dodge car.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Outside our laboratory, leaning up against a railing, Dan the
Dude, an emissary of the Clutching Hand, whose dress now greatly
belied his underworld "monniker," had been shadowing us, watching
to see when we left.

The moment we disappeared, he raised his hand carefully above his
head and made the sign of the Clutching Hand. Far down the street,
in a closed car, the Clutching Hand himself, his face masked, gave
an answering sign.

A moment later he left the car, gazing about stealthily. Not a
soul was in sight and he managed to make his way to the door of
our laboratory without being observed. Then he opened it with a
pass key which he must have obtained in some way by working the
janitor or the university officials.

Probably he thought that the papers might be at the laboratory,
for he had repeatedly failed to locate them at the Dodge house. At
any rate he was busily engaged in ransacking drawers and cabinets
in the laboratory, when the telephone suddenly rang. He did not
want to answer it, but if it kept on ringing someone outside might
come in.

An instant he hesitated. Then, disguising his voice as much as he
could to imitate mine, he took off the receiver.

"Hello!" he answered.

His face was a study in all that was dark as he realized that it
was Elaine calling. He clenched his crooked hand even more
viciously.

"Have you read them?" he asked, curbing his impatience as she
unsuspectingly poured forth her story, supposedly to me.

"Then don't unseal them," he hastened to reply. "Put them back.
Then there can be no question about them. You can open them before
witnesses."

For a moment he paused, then added, "Put them back and tell no one
of their discovery. I will tell Mr. Kennedy the moment I can get
him."

A smile spread over his sinister face as Elaine confided in him
her intention to go shopping.

"A rather expensive expedition for you, young lady," he muttered
to himself as he returned the receiver to the hook.

Clutching Hand lost no further time at the laboratory. He had
thus, luckily for him, found out what he wanted. The papers were
not there after all, but at the Dodge house.

Suppose she should really be gone on only a short shopping trip
and should return to find that she had been fooled over the wire?
Quickly, he went to the telephone again.

"Hello, Dan," he called when he got his number.

"Miss Dodge is going shopping. I want you and the other Falsers to
follow her--delay her all you can. Use your own judgment."

It was what had come to be known in his organization as the
"Brotherhood of Falsers." There, in the back room of a low dive,
were Dan the Dude, the emissary who had been loitering about the
laboratory, a gunman, Dago Mike, a couple of women, slatterns, one
known as Kitty the Hawk, and a boy of eight or ten, whom they
called Billy. Before them stood large schooners of beer, while the
precocious youngster grumbled over milk.

"All right, Chief," shouted back Dan, their leader as he hung up
the telephone after noting carefully the hasty instructions.
"We'll do it--trust us."

The others, knowing that a job was to lighten the monotony of
existence, gathered about him.

They listened intently as he detailed to them the orders of the
Clutching Hand, hastily planning out the campaign like a division
commander disposing his forces in battle and assigning each his
part.

With alacrity the Brotherhood went their separate ways.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Elaine had not been gone long from the house when Craig and I
arrived there. She had followed the telephone instructions of the
Clutching Hand and had told no one.

"Too bad," greeted Jennings, "but Miss Elaine has just gone
shopping and I don't know when she'll be back."

Shopping being an uncertain element as far as time was concerned,
Kennedy asked if anyone else was at home.

"Mrs. Dodge is in the library reading, sir," replied Jennings,
taking it for granted that we would see her.

Aunt Josephine greeted us cordially and Craig set down the
vocaphone package he was carrying.

She nodded to Jennings to leave us and he withdrew.

"I'm not going to let anything happen here to Miss Elaine again if
I can help it," remarked Craig in a low tone, a moment later,
gazing about the library.

"What are you thinking of doing?" asked Aunt Josephine keenly.

"I'm going to put in a vocaphone," he returned unwrapping it.

"What's that?" she asked.

"A loud speaking telephone--connected with my laboratory," he
explained, repeating what he had already told me, while she
listened almost awe-struck at the latest scientific wonder.

He was looking about, trying to figure out just where it could be
placed to best advantage, when he approached the suit of armor.

"I see you have brought it back and had it repaired," he remarked
to Aunt Josephine. Suddenly his face lighted up. "Ah--an idea!" he
exclaimed. "No one will ever think to look INSIDE that."

It was indeed an inspiration. Kennedy worked quickly now, placing
the little box inside the breast plate of the ancient armourer
with the top of the instrument projecting right up into the
helmet. It was a strange combination--the medieval and the ultra-
modern.

"Now, Mrs. Dodge," he said finally, as he had completed installing
the thing and hiding the wire under carpets and rugs until it ran
out to the connection which he made with the telephone, "don't
breathe a word of it--to anyone. We don't know who to trust or
suspect."

"I shall not," she answered, by this time thoroughly educated in
the value of silence.

Kennedy looked at his watch.

"I've got an engagement with the telephone company, now," he said
rather briskly, although I knew that if Elaine had been there the
company and everything could have gone hang for the present.
"Sorry not to have seen Miss Elaine," he added as we bowed
ourselves out, "but I think we've got her protected now."

"I hope so," sighed her aunt.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Elaine's car had stopped finally at a shop on Fifth Avenue. She
stepped out and entered, leaving her chauffeur to wait.

As she did so, Dan and Billy sidled along the crowded sidewalk.

"There she is, Billy," pointed out Dan as Elaine disappeared
through the swinging doors of the shop. "Now, you wait right
here," he instructed stealthily, "and when she comes out--you know
what to do. Only, be careful."

Dan the Dude left Billy, and Billy surreptitiously drew from under
his coat a dirty half loaf of bread. With a glance about, he
dropped it into the gutter close to the entrance to Elaine's car.
Then he withdrew a little distance.

When Elaine came out and approached her car, Billy, looking as
cold and forlorn as could be, shot forward. Pretending to spy the
dirty piece of bread in the gutter, he made a dive for it, just as
Elaine was about to step into the car.

Elaine, surprised, drew back. Billy picked up the piece of bread
and, with all the actions of having discovered a treasure, began
to gnaw at it voraciously.

Shocked at the disgusting sight, she tried to take the bread away
from him.

"I know it's dirty, Miss," whimpered Billy, "but it's the first
food I've seen for four days."

Instantly Elaine was full of sympathy. She had taken the food
away. That would not suffice.

"What's your name, little boy?" she asked.

"Billy," he replied, blubbering.

"Where do you live?"

"With me mother and father--they're sick--nothing to eat--"

He was whimpering an address far over on the East Side.

"Get into the car," Elaine directed.

"Gee--but this is swell," he cried, with no fake, this time.

On they went, through the tenement canyons, dodging children and
pushcarts, stopping first at a grocer's, then at a butcher's and a
delicatessen. Finally the car stopped where Billy directed. Billy
hobbled out, followed by Elaine and her chauffeur, his arms piled
high with provisions. She was indeed a lovely Lady Bountiful as a
crowd of kids quickly surrounded the car.

In the meantime Dago Mike and Kitty the Hawk had gone to a
wretched flat, before which Billy stopped. Kitty sat on the bed,
putting dark circles under her eyes with a blackened cork. She was
very thin and emaciated, but it was dissipation that had done it.
Dago Mike was correspondingly poorly dressed.

He had paused beside the window to look out. "She's coming," he
announced finally.

Kitty hastily jumped into the rickety bed, while Mike took up a
crutch that was standing idly in a corner. She coughed resignedly
and he limped about, forlorn. They had assumed their parts which
were almost to the burlesque of poverty, when the door was pushed
open and Billy burst in followed by Elaine and the chauffeur.

"Oh, ma--oh, pa," he cried running forward and kissing his pseudo-
parents, as Elaine, overcome with sympathy, directed the chauffeur
to lay the things on a shaky table.

"God bless you, lady, for a benevolent angel!" muttered the pair,
to which Elaine responded by moving over to the wretched bed and
bending down to stroke the forehead of the sick woman.

Billy and Mike exchanged a sly wink.

Just then the door opened again. All were genuinely surprised this
time, for a prim, spick and span, middle-aged woman entered.

"I am Miss Statistix, of the organized charities," she announced,
looking around sharply. "I saw your car standing outside, Miss,
and the children below told me you were up here. I came up to see
whether you were aiding really DESERVING poor."

She laid a marked emphasis on the word, pursing up her lips. There
was no mistaking the apprehension that these fine birds of prey
had of her, either.

Miss Statistix took a step forward, looking in a very superior
manner from Elaine to the packages of food and then at these prize
members of the Brotherhood. She snorted contemptuously.

"Why--wh-what's the matter?" asked Elaine, fidgeting
uncomfortably, as if she were herself guilty, in the icy
atmosphere that now seemed to envelope all things.

"This man is a gunman, that woman is a bad woman, the boy is Billy
the Bread-Snatcher," she answered precisely, drawing out a card on
which to record something, "and you, Miss, are a fool!"

"Ya!" snarled the two precious falsers, "get out o' here!"

There was no combating Miss Statistix. She overwhelmed all
arguments by the very exactness of her personality.

"YOU get out!" she countered.

Kitty and Mike, accompanied by Billy, sneaked out. Elaine, now
very much embarrassed, looked about, wondering at the rapid-fire
change. Miss Statistix smiled pityingly.

"Such innocence!" she murmured sadly shaking her head as she lead
Elaine to the door. "Don't you know better than to try to help
anybody without INVESTIGATING?"

Elaine departed, speechless, properly squelched, followed by her
chauffeur.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Meanwhile, a closed car, such as had stood across from the
laboratory, had drawn up not far from the Dodge house. Near it was
a man in rather shabby clothes and a visored cap on which were the
words in dull gold lettering, "Metropolitan Window Cleaning Co."
He carried a bucket and a small extension ladder.

In the darkened recesses of the car was the Clutching Hand
himself, masked as usual. He had his watch in his hand and was
giving most minute instructions to the window cleaner about
something. As the latter turned to go, a sharp observer would have
noted that it was Dan the Dude, still further disguised.

A few moments later, Dan appeared at the servants' entrance of the
Dodge house and rang the bell. Jennings, who happened to be down
there, came to the door.

"Man to clean the windows," saluted the bogus cleaner, touching
his hat in a way quietly to call attention to the words on it and
drawing from his pocket a faked written order.

"All right," nodded Jennings examining the order and finding it
apparently all right.

Dan followed him in, taking the ladder and bucket upstairs, where
Aunt Josephine was still reading.

"The man to clean the windows, ma'am," apologized Jennings.

"Oh, very well," she nodded, taking up her book, to go. Then,
recalling the frequent injunctions of Kennedy, she paused long
enough to speak quietly to Jennings.

"Stay here and watch him," she whispered as she went out.

Jennings nodded, while Dan opened a window and set to work.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Elaine had scarcely started again in her car down the crowded
narrow street. From her position she could not possibly have seen
Johnnie, another of the Brotherhood, watching her eagerly up the
street.

But as her car approached, Johnnie, with great determination,
pulled himself together and ran forward across the street. She saw
that.

"Oh!" she screamed, her heart almost stopping.

He had fallen directly in front of the wheels of the car,
apparently, and although the chauffeur stopped with a jolt, it
seemed that the boy had been run over.

They jumped out. There he was, sure enough, under the very wheels.
People came running now in all directions and lifted him up,
groaning piteously. He seemed literally twisted into a knot which
looked as if every bone in his body was broken or dislocated.

Elaine was overcome. For, following their natural instincts the
crowd began pushing in with cries of "Lynch the driver!" It would
have gone hard with him, too, if she had not interfered.

"Here!" cried Elaine, stepping in. "It wasn't his fault. The boy
ran across the street right in front of the car. Now--we're just
going to rush this boy to the hospital--right away!"

She lifted Johnnie gently into the car herself and they drove off,
to a very vigorous blowing of the horn.

A few moments later they pulled up before the ambulance entrance
to the hospital.

"Quick!" beckoned Elaine to the attendants, who ran out and
carried Johnnie, still a complicated knot of broken bones, inside.

In the reception room were a couple of nurses and a young medical
student, when Johnnie was carried in and laid on the bed. The
student, more interested in Elaine than the boy, examined him. His
face wore a puzzled look and there was every reason to believe
that Johnnie was seriously injured.

At that moment the door opened and an elderly, gray-bearded house
physician entered. The others stepped back from the bed
respectfully. He advanced and examined Johnnie.

The doctor looked at the boy a moment, then at Elaine.

"I will now effect a miraculous cure by the laying on of hands,"
he announced, adding quickly, "--and of feet!"

To the utter surprise of all he seized the boy by the coat collar,
lifting him up and actually bouncing him on the floor. Then he
picked him up, shook him and ran him out of the room, delivering
one last kick as he went through the door. By the way Johnnie
went, it was quite evident that he was no more injured than the
chauffeur. Elaine did not know whether to be angry or to laugh,
but finally joined in the general laugh.

"That was Double-Jointed Johnnie," puffed the doctor, as he
returned to them, "one of the greatest accident fakers in the
city."

Elaine, having had two unfortunate experiences during the day, now
decided to go home and the doctor politely escorted her to her
car.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

From his closed car, the Clutching Hand gazed intently at the
Dodge house. He could see Dan on the ladder, now washing the
library window, his back toward him.

Dan turned slowly and made the sign of the hand. Turning to his
chauffeur, the master criminal spoke a few words in a low tone and
the driver hurried off.

A few minutes later the driver might have been seen entering a
near-by drug store and going into the telephone booth. Without a
moment's hesitation he called up the Dodge house and Marie,
Elaine's maid, answered.

"Is Jennings there?" he asked. "Tell him a friend wants to speak
to him."

"Wait a minute," she answered. "I'll get him."

Marie went toward the library, leaving the telephone off the hook.
Dan was washing the windows, half inside, half outside the house,
while Jennings was trying to be very busy, although it was
apparent that he was watching Dan closely.

"A friend of yours wants to speak to you over the telephone,
Jennings," said Marie, as she came into the library.

The butler responded slowly, with a covert glance at Dan.

No sooner had they gone, however, than Dan climbed all the way
into the room, ran to the door and looked after them. Then he ran
to the window. Across and down the street, the Clutching Hand was
gazing at the house. He had seen Dan disappear and suspected that
the time had come.

Sure enough, there was the sign of the hand. He hastily got out of
the car and hurried up the street. All this time the chauffeur was
keeping Jennings busy over the telephone with some trumped-up
story.

As the master criminal came in by the ladder through the open
window, Dan was on guard, listening down the hallway. A signal
from Dan, and Clutching Hand slid back of the portieres. Jennings
was returning.

"I've finished these windows," announced Dan as the butler
reappeared. "Now, I'll clean the hall windows."

Jennings followed like a shadow, taking the bucket.

No sooner had they gone than Clutching Hand stealthily came from
behind the portieres.

One of the maids was sweeping in the hall as Dan went toward the
window, about to wash it.

"I wonder whether I locked these windows?" muttered Jennings,
pausing in the hallway. "I guess I'd better make sure."

He had taken only a step toward the library again, when Dan
watchfully caught sight of him. It would never do to have Jennings
snooping around there now. Quick action was necessary. Dan knocked
over a costly Sevres vase.

"There--clumsy--see what you've done!" berated Jennings, starting
to pick up the pieces.

Dan had acted his part well and promptly. In the library,
Clutching Hand was busily engaged at that moment beside the secret
panel searching for the spring that released it. He ran his finger
along the woodwork, pausing here and there without succeeding.

"Confound it!" he muttered, searching feverishly.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Kennedy, having made the arrangements with the telephone company
by which he had a clear wire from the Dodge house to his
laboratory, had rejoined me there and was putting on the finishing
touches to his installation of the vocaphone.

Every now and then he would switch it on, and we would listen in
as he demonstrated the wonderful little instrument to me. He had
heard the window cleaner and Jennings, but thought nothing of it
at the time.

Once, however, Craig paused and I saw him listening more intently
than usual.

"They've gone out," he muttered, "but surely there is someone in
the Dodge library."

I listened; too. The thing was so sensitive that even a whisper
could be magnified and I certainly did hear something.

Kennedy frowned. What was that scratching noise? Could it be
Jennings? Perhaps it was Rusty.

Just then we could distinguish a sound as though someone had moved
about.

"No--that's not Jennings," cried Craig. "He went out."

He looked at me a moment. The same stealthy noise was repeated.

"It's the Clutching Hand!" he exclaimed excitedly.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

A moment later, Dan hurried into the Dodge library.

"For heaven's sake, Chief, hurry!" he whispered hoarsely. "The
falsers must have fallen down. The girl herself is coming!"

Dan himself had no time to waste. He retreated into the hallway
just as Jennings was opening the door for Elaine.

Marie took her wraps and left her, while Elaine handed her
numerous packages to Jennings. Dan watched every motion.

"Put them away, Jennings," she said softly.

Jennings had obeyed and gone upstairs. Elaine moved toward the
library. Dan took a quiet step or two behind her, in the same
direction.

In the library, Clutching Hand was now frantically searching for
the spring. He heard Elaine coming and dodged behind the curtains
again just as she entered.

With a hasty look about, she saw no one. Then she went quickly to
the panel, found the spring, and pressed it. So many queer things
had happened to her since she went out that she had begun to worry
over the safety of the papers.

The panel opened. They were there, all right. She opened the box
and took them out, hesitating to break the seal before Kennedy
arrived.

Stealthy and tiger-like the Clutching Hand crept up behind her. As
he did so, Dan gazed in through the portieres from the hall.

With a spring, Clutching Hand leaped at Elaine, snatching at the
papers. Elaine clung to them tenaciously in spite of the surprise,
and they struggled for them, Clutching Hand holding one hand over
her mouth to prevent her screaming. Instantly Dan was there,
aiding his chief.

"Choke her! Strangle her! Don't let her scream!" he ground out.

They fought viciously. Would they succeed? It was two desperate,
unscrupulous men against one frail girl.

Suddenly, from the man in armor in the corner, as if by a miracle
came a deep, loud voice.

"Help! Help! Murder! Police! They are strangling me!"

The effect was terrific.

Clutching Hand and Dan, hardened in crime as they were, fell back,
dazed, overcome for the moment at the startling effect.

They looked about. Not a soul.

Then to their utter consternation, from the vizor of the helmet
again came the deep, vibrating warning.

"Help! Murder! Police!"

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Kennedy and I had been listening over the vocaphone, for the
moment non-plussed at the fellow's daring.

Then we heard from the uncanny instrument, "For Heaven's sake,
Chief, hurry! The falsers have fallen down. The girl herself is
coming!"

What it meant we did not know. But Craig was almost beside
himself, as he ordered me to try to get the police by telephone,
if there was any way to block them. Only instant action would
count, however. What to do?

He could hear the master criminal plainly fumbling, now.

"Yes, that's the Clutching Hand," he repeated.

"Wait," I cautioned, "someone else is coming!"

By a sort of instinct he seemed to recognize the sounds.

"Elaine!" he exclaimed, paling.

Instantly followed, in less time than I can tell it, the sounds of
a suppressed scuffle.

"He has seized her--gagged her," I cried in an agony of suspense.

We could now hear everything that was going on in the library.
Craig was wildly excited. As for me, I was speechless. Here was
the vocaphone we had installed. It had warned us. But what could
we do?

I looked blankly at Kennedy. He was equal to the emergency.

He calmly turned a switch.

Then, at the top of his lungs, he shouted, "Help! Help! Police!
They are strangling me!"

I looked at him in amazement. What did he think he could do--
blocks away?

"It works both ways," he muttered. "Help! Murder! Police!"

We could hear the astounded cursing of the two men. Also, down the
hall, now, we could hear footsteps approaching in answer to his
call for help--Aunt Josephine, Jennings, Marie, and others, all
shouting out that there were cries in the library.

"The deuce! What is it?" muttered a gruff voice.

"The man in armor!" hissed Clutching Hand.

"Here they come, too, Chief!"

There was a parting scuffle.

"There--take that!"

A loud metallic ringing came from the vocaphone.

Then, silence!

What had happened

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

In the library, recovered from their first shock of surprise, Dan
cried out to the Clutching Hand, "The deuce. What is it?"

Then, looking about, Clutching Hand quickly took in the situation.

"The man in armor!" he pointed out.

Dan was almost dead with fright at the weird thing.

"Here they come, too, Chief," he gasped, as, down the hall he
could hear the family shouting out that someone was in the
library.

With a parting thrust, Clutching Hand sent Elaine reeling.

She held on to only a corner of the papers. He had the greater
part of them. They were torn and destroyed, anyway.

Finally, with all the venomousness of which he was capable,
Clutching Hand rushed at the armor suit, drew back his gloved
fist, and let it shoot out squarely in a vicious solar plexus
blow.

"There--take that!" he roared.

The suit rattled, furiously. Out of it spilled the vocaphone with
a bang on the floor.

An instant later those in the hall rushed in. But the Clutching
Hand and Dan were gone out of the window, the criminal carrying
the greater part of the precious papers.

Some ran to Elaine, others to the window. The ladder had been
kicked away and the criminals were gone. Leaping into the waiting
car, they had been whisked away.

"Hello! Hello! Hello!" called a voice, apparently from nowhere.

"What is that?" cried Elaine, still blankly wondering.

She had risen by this time and was gazing about, wondering at the
strange voice. Suddenly her eye fell on the armor scattered all
over the floor. She spied the little oak box.

"Elaine!"

Apparently the voice came from that. Besides, it had a familiar
ring to her ears.

"Yes--Craig!" she cried.

"This is my vocaphone--the little box that hears and talks," came
back to her. "Are you all right?"

"Yes--all right,--thanks to the vocaphone."

She had understood in an instant. She seized the helmet and
breastplate to which the vocaphone still was attached and was
holding them close to herself.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Kennedy had been calling and listening intently over the machine,
wondering whether it had been put out of business in some way.

"It works--yet!" he cried excitedly to me. "Elaine!"

"Yes, Craig," came back over the faithful little instrument.

"Are you all right?"

"Yes--all right."

"Thank heaven!" breathed Craig, pushing me aside.

Literally he kissed that vocaphone as if it had been human!




CHAPTER IX

THE DEATH RAY


Kennedy was reading a scientific treatise one morning, while I was
banging on the typewriter, when a knock at the laboratory door
disturbed us.

By some intuition, Craig seemed to know who it was. He sprang to
open the door, and there stood Elaine Dodge and her lawyer, Perry
Bennett.

Instantly, Craig read from the startled look on Elaine's face that
something dreadful had happened.

"Why--what's the matter?" he asked, solicitously.

"A--another letter--from the Clutching Hand!" she exclaimed
breathlessly. "Mr. Bennett was calling on me, when this note was
brought in. We both thought we'd better see you at once about it
and he was kind enough to drive me here right away in his car."

Craig took the letter and we both read, with amazement:

"Are you an enemy of society? If not, order Craig Kennedy to leave
the country by nine o'clock to-morrow morning. Otherwise, a
pedestrian will drop dead outside his laboratory every hour until
he leaves."

The note was signed by the now familiar sinister hand, and had,
added, a postcript, which read:

"As a token of his leaving, have him place a vase of flowers on
his laboratory window to-day."

"What shall we do?" queried Bennett, evidently very much alarmed
at the threat.

"Do?" replied Kennedy, laughing contemptuously at the apparently
futile threat, "why, nothing. Just wait."

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

The day proved uneventful and I paid no further attention to the
warning letter. It seemed too preposterous to amount to anything.

Kennedy, however, with his characteristic foresight, as I learned
afterwards, had not been entirely unprepared, though he had
affected to treat the thing with contempt.

His laboratory, I may say, was at the very edge of the University
buildings, with the campus back of it, but opening on the other
side on a street that was ordinarily not overcrowded.

We got up as usual the next day and, quite early, went over to the
laboratory. Kennedy, as was his custom, plunged straightway into
his work and appeared absorbed by it, while I wrote.

"There IS something queer going on, Walter," he remarked. "This
thing registers some kind of wireless rays--infra-red, I think,--
something like those that they say that Italian scientist, Ulivi,
claims he has discovered and called the 'F-rays.'"

"How do you know?" I asked, looking up from my work. "What's that
instrument you are using?"

"A bolometer, invented by the late Professor Langley," he replied,
his attention riveted on it.

Some time previously, Kennedy had had installed on the window
ledge one of those mirror-like arrangements, known as a
"busybody," which show those in a room what is going on on the
street.

As I moved over to look at the bolometer, I happened to glance
into the busybody and saw that a crowd was rapidly collecting on
the sidewalk.

"Look, Craig!" I called hastily.

He hurried over to me and looked. We could both see in the
busybody mirror a group of excited passersby bending over a man
lying prostrate on the sidewalk.

He had evidently been standing on the curbstone outside the
laboratory and had suddenly put his hand to his forehead. Then he
had literally crumpled up into a heap, as he sank to the ground.

The excited crowd lifted him up and bore him away, and I turned in
surprise to Craig. He was looking at his watch.

It was now only a few moments past nine o'clock!

Not quarter of an hour later, our door was excitedly flung open
and Elaine and Perry Bennett arrived.

"I've just heard of the accident," she cried, fearfully. "Isn't it
terrible. What had we better do?"

For a few moments no one said a word. Then Kennedy began carefully
examining the bolometer and some other recording instruments he
had, while the rest of us watched, fascinated.

Somehow that "busybody" seemed to attract me. I could not resist
looking into it from time to time as Kennedy worked.

I was scarcely able to control my excitement when, again, I saw
the same scene enacted on the sidewalk before the laboratory.
Hurriedly I looked at my watch. It was ten o'clock!

"Craig!" I cried. "Another!"

Instantly he was at my side, gazing eagerly. There was a second
innocent pedestrian lying on the sidewalk while a crowd, almost
panic-stricken, gathered about him.

We watched, almost stunned by the suddenness of the thing, until
finally, without a word, Kennedy turned away, his face set in
tense lines.

"It's no use," he muttered, as we gathered about him. "We're
beaten. I can't stand this sort of thing. I will leave to-morrow
for South America."

I thought Elaine Dodge would faint at the shock of his words
coming so soon after the terrible occurrence outside. She looked
at him, speechless.

It happened that Kennedy had some artificial flowers on a stand,
which he had been using long before in the study of synthetic
coloring materials. Before Elaine could recover her tongue, he
seized them and stuck them into a tall beaker, like a vase. Then
he deliberately walked to the window and placed the beaker on the
ledge in a most prominent position.

Elaine and Bennett, to say nothing of myself, gazed at him, awe-
struck.

"Is--is there no other way but to surrender?" she asked.

Kennedy mournfully shook his head.

"I'm afraid not," he answered slowly. "There's no telling how far
a fellow who has this marvellous power might go. I think I'd
better leave to save you. He may not content himself with innocent
outsiders always."

Nothing that any of us could say, not even the pleadings of Elaine
herself could move him. The thought that at eleven o'clock a third
innocent passerby might lie stricken on the street seemed to move
him powerfully.

When, at eleven, nothing happened as it had at the other two
hours, he was even more confirmed in his purpose. Entreaties had
no effect, and late in the morning, he succeeded in convincing us
all that his purpose was irrevocable.

As we stood at the door, mournfully bidding our visitors farewell
until the morrow, when he had decided to sail, I could see that he
was eager to be alone. He had been looking now and then at the
peculiar instrument which he had been studying earlier in the day
and I could see on his face a sort of subtle intentness.

"I'm so sorry--Craig," murmured Elaine, choking back her emotion,
and finding it impossible to go on.

"So am I, Elaine," he answered, tensely. "But--perhaps--when this
trouble blows over--"

He paused, unable to speak, turned, and shook his head. Then with
a forced gaiety he bade Elaine and Perry Bennett adieu, saying
that perhaps a trip might do him good.

They had scarcely gone out and Kennedy closed the door carefully,
when he turned and went directly to the instrument which I had
seen him observing so interestedly.

Plainly, I could see that it was registering something.

"What's the matter?" I asked, non-plussed.

"Just a moment, Walter," he replied evasively, as if not quite
sure of himself.

He walked fairly close to the window this time, keeping well out
of the direct line of it, however, and there stood gazing out into
the street.

A glint, as if of the sun shining on a pair of opera glasses could
be seen from a window across the way.

"We are being watched," he said slowly, turning and looking at me
fixedly, "but I don't dare investigate lest it cost the lives of
more unfortunates."

He stood for a moment in deep thought. Then he pulled out a
suitcase and began silently to pack it.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Although we had not dared to investigate, we knew that from a
building, across the street, emissaries of the Clutching Hand were
watching for our signal of surrender.

The fact was, as we found out later, that in a poorly furnished
room, much after the fashion of that which, with the help of the
authorities, we had once raided in the suburbs, there were at that
moment two crooks.

One of them was the famous, or rather the infamous, Professor
LeCroix, with whom in a disguise as a doctor we had already had
some experience when he stole from the Hillside Sanitarium the
twilight sleep drugs. The other was the young secretary of the
Clutching Hand who had given the warning at the suburban
headquarters at the time when they were endeavoring to tranfuse
Elaine Dodge's blood to save the life of the crook whom she had
shot.

This was the new headquarters of the master criminal, very
carefully guarded.

"Look!" cried LeCroix, very much elated at the effect that had
been produced by his infra-red rays, "There is the sign--the vase
of flowers. We have got him this time!"

LeCroix gleefully patted a peculiar instrument beside him.
Apparently it was a combination of powerful electric arcs, the
rays of which were shot through a funnel-like arrangement into a
converter or, rather, a sort of concentration apparatus from which
the dread power could be released through a tube-like affair at
one end. It was his infra-red heat wave, F-ray, engine.

"I told you--it would work!" cried LeCroix.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

I did not argue any further with Craig about his sudden resolution
to go away. But it is a very solemn proceeding to pack up and
admit defeat after such a brilliant succession of cases as had
been his until we met this master criminal.

He was unshakeable, however, and the next morning we closed the
laboratory and loaded our baggage, which was considerable, on a
taxicab.

Neither of us said much, but I saw a quick look of appreciation on
Craig's face as we pulled up at the wharf and saw that the Dodge
car was already there. He seemed deeply moved that Elaine should
come at such an early hour to have a last word.

Our cab stopped and Kennedy moved over toward her car, directing
two porters, whom I noticed that he chose with care, to wait at
one side. One of them was an old Irishman with a slight limp; the
other a wiry Frenchman with a pointed beard.

In spite of her pleadings, however, Kennedy held to his purpose
and, as we shook hands for the last time, I thought that Elaine
would almost break down.

"Here, you fellows, now," directed Craig, turning brusquely to the
porters, "hustle that baggage right aboard."

"Can't we go on the ship, too?" asked Elaine, appealingly.

"I'm sorry--I'm afraid there isn't time," apologized Craig.

We finally tore ourselves away, followed by the porters carrying
as much as they could.

"Bon voyage!" cried Elaine, bravely keeping back a choke in her
voice.

Near the gangplank, in the crowd, I noticed a couple of sinister
faces watching the ship's officers and the passengers going
aboard. Kennedy's quick eye spotted them, too, but he did not show
in any way that he noticed anything as, followed by our two
porters, we quickly climbed the gangplank.

A moment Craig paused by the rail and waved to Elaine and Bennett
who returned the salute feelingly. I paused at the rail, too,
speculating how we were to get the rest of our baggage aboard in
time, for we had taken several minutes saying good-bye.

"In there," pointed Kennedy quickly to the porters, indicating our
stateroom which was an outside room. "Come, Walter."

I followed him in with a heavy heart.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Outside could be seen the two sinister faces in the crowd watching
intently, with eyes fixed on the stateroom. Finally one of the
crooks boarded the ship hastily, while the other watched the two
porters come out of the stateroom and pause at the window,
speaking back into the room as though answering commands.

Then the porters quickly ran along the deck and down the plank, to
get the rest of the luggage. As they approached the Dodge car,
Elaine, Aunt Josephine and Perry Bennett were straining their eyes
to catch a last glimpse of us.

The porters took a small but very heavy box and, lugging and
tugging, hastened toward the boat with it. But they were too late.
The gang plank was being hauled in.

They shouted, but the ship's officers waved them back.

"Too late!" one of the deckhands shouted, a little pleased to see
that someone would be inconvenienced for tardiness.

The porters argued. But it was no use. All they could do was to
carry the box back to the Dodge car.

Miss Dodge was just getting in as they returned.

"What shall we do with this and the other stuff?" asked the Irish
porter.

She looked at the rest of the tagged luggage and the box which was
marked:

Scientific Instruments Valuable Handle with care.

"Here--pile them in here," she said indicating the taxicab. "I'll
take charge of them."

Meanwhile one of our sinister faced friends had just had time to
regain the shore after following us aboard ship and strolling past
the window of our stateroom. He paused long enough to observe one
of the occupants studying a map, while the other was opening a
bag.

"They're gone!" he said to the other as he rejoined him on the
dock, giving a nod of his head and a jerk of his thumb at the
ship.

"Yes," added the other crook, "and lost most of their baggage,
too."

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Slowly the Dodge car proceeded through the streets up from the
river front, followed by the taxicab, until at last the Dodge
mansion, was reached.

There Elaine and Aunt Josephine got out and Bennett stood talking
with them a moment. Finally he excused himself reluctantly for it
was now late, even for a lawyer, to get to his office.

As he hurried over to the subway, Elaine nodded to the porters in
the taxicab, "Take that stuff in the house. We'll have to send it
by the next boat."

Then she followed Aunt Josephine while the porters unloaded the
boxes and bags.

Elaine sighed moodily as she walked slowly in.

"Here, Marie," she cried petulantly to her maid, "take these wraps
of mine."

Marie ventured no remark, but, like a good servant, took them.

A moment later Aunt Josephine left her and Elaine went into the
library and over to a table. She stood there an instant, then sank
down into a chair, taking up Kennedy's picture and gazing at it
with eyes filled by tears.

Just then Jennings came into the room, ushering the two porters
laden with the boxes and bags.

"Where shall I have them put these things, Miss Elaine?" he
inquired.

"Oh--anywhere," she answered hurriedly, replacing the picture.

Jennings paused. As he did so, one of the porters limped forward.
"I've a message for you, Miss," he said in a rich Irish brogue,
with a look at Jennings, "to be delivered in private."

Elaine glanced at him surprised. Then she nodded to Jennings who
disappeared. As he did so, the Irishman limped to the door and
drew together the portieres.

Then he came back closer to Elaine.

A moment she looked at him, not quite knowing from his strange
actions whether to call for help or not.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

At a motion from Kennedy, as he pulled off his wig, I pulled off
the little false beard.

Elaine looked at us, transformed, startled.

"Wh--what--" she stammered. "Oh--I'm--so--glad. How--"

Kennedy said nothing. He was thoroughly enjoying her face.

"Don't you understand?" I explained, laughing merrily. "I admit
that I didn't until that last minute in the stateroom on the boat
when we didn't come back to wave a last good-bye. But all the care
that Craig took in selecting the porters was the result of work he
did yesterday, and the insistence with which he chose our
travelling clothes had a deep-laid purpose."

She said nothing, and I continued.

"The change was made quickly in the stateroom. Kennedy's man threw
on the coat and hat he wore, while Craig donned the rough clothes
of the porter and added a limp and a wig. The same sort of
exchange of clothes was made by me and Craig clapped a Van Dyck
beard on my chin."

"I--I'm so glad," she repeated. "I didn't think you'd--"

She cut the sentence short, remembering her eyes and the
photograph as we entered, and a deep blush crimsoned her face.

"Mum's the word," cautioned Kennedy, "You must smuggle us out of
the house, some way."

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Kennedy lost no time in confirming the suspicions of his bolometer
as to the cause of the death of the two innocent victims of the
machinations of the Clutching Hand.

Both of them, he had learned, had been removed to a nearby
undertaking shop, awaiting the verdict of the coroner. We sought
out the shop and prevailed on the undertaker to let us see the
bodies.

As Kennedy pulled down the shroud from the face of the first
victim, he disclosed on his forehead a round dark spot about the
size of a small coin. Quickly, he moved to the next coffin and,
uncovering the face, disclosed a similar mark.

"What is it?" I asked, awestruck.

"Why," he said, "I've heard of a certain Viennese, one LeCroix I
believe, who has discovered or perfected an infra-red ray
instrument which shoots its power a great distance with extreme
accuracy and leaves a mark like these."

"Is he in New York?" I inquired anxiously.

"Yes, I believe he is."

Kennedy seemed indisposed to answer more until he knew more, and I
saw that he would prefer not being questioned for the present.

We thanked the undertaker for his courtesy and went out.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Meanwhile Elaine had called up Perry Bennett.

"Mr. Bennett," she exclaimed over the wire, "just guess who called
on me?"

"Who?" he answered, "I give it up."

"Mr. Kennedy and Mr. Jameson," she called back.

"Is that so?" he returned. "Isn't that fine? I didn't think he was
the kind to run away like that. How did it happen?"

Elaine quickly told the story as I had told her.

Had she known it, however, Bennett's valet, Thomas, was at that
very moment listening at the door, intensely interested.

As Bennett hung up the receiver, Thomas entered the room.

"If anyone calls me," ordered Bennett, "take the message,
particularly if it is from Miss Dodge. I must get downtown--and
tell her after I finish my court work for the day I shall be right
up."

"Yes sir," nodded the valet with a covert glance at his master.

Then, as Bennett left, he followed him to the door, paused,
thought a moment, then, as though coming to a sudden decision,
went out by an opposite door.

It was not long afterward that a knock sounded at the door of the
new headquarters of the Clutching Hand. LeCroix and the secretary
were there, as well as a couple of others.

"The Chief!" exclaimed one.

The secretary opened the door, and, sure enough, the Clutching
Hand entered.

"Well, how did your infra-red rays work?" he asked LeCroix.

"Fine."

"And they're gone?"

"Yes. The flowers were in the window yesterday. Two of our men saw
them on the boat."

There came another knock. This time, as the door opened, it was
Thomas, Bennett's faithless valet, who entered.

"Say," blurted out the informer, "do you know Kennedy and Jameson
are back?"

"Back?" cried the crooks.

"Yes,--they didn't go. Changed clothes with the porters. I just
heard Miss Dodge telling Mr. Bennett."

Clutching Hand eyed him keenly, then seemed to burst into an
ungovernable fury.

Quickly he began volleying orders at the valet and the others.
Then, with the secretary and two of the other crooks he left by
another door from that by which he had sent the valet forth.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Leaving the undertaker's, Kennedy and I made our way, keeping off
thoroughfares, to police headquarters, where, after making
ourselves known, Craig made arrangements for a raid on the house
across the street from the laboratory where we had seen the opera
glass reflection.

Then, as secretly as we had come, we went out again, letting
ourselves into the laboratory, stealthily looking up and down the
street. We entered by a basement door, which Kennedy carefully
locked again.

No sooner had we disappeared than one of the Clutching Hand's
spies who had been watching behind a barrel of rubbish gave the
signal of the hand down the street to a confederate and, going to
the door, entered by means of a skeleton key.

We entered our laboratory which Kennedy had closed the day before.
With shades drawn, it now looked deserted enough.

I dropped into a chair and lighted a cigarette with a sigh of
relief, for really I had thought, until the boat sailed, that
Kennedy actually contemplated going away.

Kennedy went over to a cabinet and, from it, took out a notebook
and a small box. Opening the notebook on the laboratory table, he
rapidly turned the pages.

"Here, Walter," he remarked. "This will answer your questions
about the mysterious deadly ray."

I moved over to the table, eager to satisfy my curiosity and read
the notes which he indicated with his finger.

INFRA-RED RAY NOTES

The infra-red ray which has been developed by LeCroix from the
experiments of the Italian scientist Ulivi causes, when
concentrated by an apparatus perfected by LeCroix, an
instantaneous combustion of nonreflecting surfaces. It is
particularly deadly in its effect on the brain centers.

It can be diverted, it is said however, by a shield composed of
platinum backed by asbestos.

Next Kennedy opened the case which he had taken out of the cabinet
and from it he took out the platinum-asbestos mirror, which was
something of his own invention. He held it up and in pantomime
showed me just how it would cut off the deadly rays.

He had not finished even that, when a peculiar noise in the
laboratory itself disturbed him and he hastily thrust the asbestos
platinum shield into his pocket.

Though we had not realized it, our return had been anticipated.

Suddenly, from a closet projected a magazine gun and before we
could move, the Clutching Hand himself slowly appeared, behind us.

"Ah!" he exclaimed with mock politeness, "so, you thought you'd
fool me, did you? Well!"

Just then, two other crooks, who had let themselves in by the
skeleton key through the basement jumped into the room through
that door covering us.

We started to our feet, but in an instant found ourselves both
sprawling on the floor.

In the cabinet, beneath the laboratory table, another crook had
been hidden and he tackled us with all the skill of an old
football player against whom we had no defence.

Four of them were upon us instantly.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

At the same time, Thomas, the faithless valet of Bennett, had been
dispatched by the Clutching Hand to commandeer his master's
roadster in his absence, and, carrying out the instructions, he
had driven up before Elaine's house at the very moment when she
was going out for a walk.

Thomas jumped out of the car and touched his hat deferentially.

"A message from Mr. Bennett, ma'am," he explained. "Mr. Kennedy
and Mr. Bennett have sent me to ask you to come over to the
laboratory."

Unsuspecting, Elaine stepped into the car and drove off.

Instead, however, of turning and pulling up on the laboratory side
of the street, Thomas stopped opposite it. He got out and Elaine,
thinking that perhaps it was to save time that he had not turned
the car around, followed.

But when the valet, instead of crossing the street, went up to a
door of a house and rang the bell, she began to suspect that all
was not as it should be.

"What are you going here for, Thomas?" she asked. "There's the
laboratory--over there."

"But, Miss Dodge," he apologized, "Mr. Kennedy and Mr. Bennett are
here. They told me they'd be here."

The door was opened quickly by a lookout of the Clutching Hand and
the valet asked if Craig and Elaine's lawyer were in. Of course
the lookout replied that they were and, before Elaine knew it, she
was jostled into the dark hallway and the door was banged shut.

Resistance was useless now and she was hurried along until another
door was opened.

There she saw LeCroix and the other crooks.

And, as the door slammed, she caught sight of the fearsome
Clutching Hand himself.

She drew back, but was too frightened even to scream.

With a harsh, cruel laugh, the super-criminal beckoned to her to
follow him and look down through a small trap door.

Unable now to resist, she looked.

There she saw us. To that extent the valet had told the truth.
Kennedy was standing in deep thought, while I sat on an old box,
smoking a cigarette--very miserable.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Was this to be the sole outcome of Kennedy's clever ruse, I was
wondering. Were we only to be shipwrecked in sight of port?

Watching his chance, when the street was deserted, the Clutching
Hand and his followers had hustled us over to the new hangout
across from the laboratory. There they had met more crooks and had
thrust us into this vile hole. As the various ineffectual schemes
for escape surged through my head, I happened to look up and
caught a glance of horror on Craig's face. I followed his eyes.
There, above us, was Elaine!

I saw her look from us to the Clutching Hand in terror. But none
of us uttered a word.

"I will now show you, my dear young lady," almost hissed the
Clutching Hand at length, "as pretty a game of hide and seek as
you have ever seen."

As he said it, another trap door near the infra-red ray machine
was opened and a beam of light burst through. I knew it was not
that which we had to fear, but the invisible rays that accompanied
it, the rays that had affected the bolometer.

Just then a spot of light showed near my foot, moving about the
cement floor until it fell on my shoe. Instantly, the leather
charred, even before I could move.

Kennedy and I leaped to our feet and drew back. The beam followed
us. We retreated further. Still it followed, inexorably.

Clutching Hand was now holding Elaine near the door where she
could not help seeing, laughing diabolically while he directed
LeCroix and the rest to work the infra-red ray apparatus through
the trap.

As we dodged from corner to corner, endeavoring to keep the red
ray from touching us, the crooks seemed in no hurry, but rather to
enjoy prolonging the torture as does a cat with a mouse.

"Please--oh, please--stop!" begged Elaine.

Clutching Hand only laughed with fiendish delight and urged his
men on.

The thing was getting closer and closer.

Suddenly we heard a strange voice ring out above us.

"Police!"

"Where?" growled the Clutching Hand in fury.

"Outside--a raid! Run! He's told them!"

Already we could hear the hammers and axes of the police whom
Kennedy had called upon before, as they battered at the outside
door.

At that door a moment before, the lookout suddenly had given a
startled stare and a suppressed cry. Glancing down the street he
had seen a police patrol in which were a score or more of the
strongarm squad. They had jumped out, some carrying sledgehammers,
others axes.

Almost before he could cry out and retreat to give a warning, they
had reached the door and the first resounding blows had been
struck.

The lookout quickly had fled and drawn the bolts of a strong inner
door, and the police began battering that impediment.

Instantly, Clutching Hand turned to LeCroix at the F-ray machine.

"Finish them!" he shouted.

We were now backed up against a small ell in the wall of the
cellar. It was barely large enough to hold us, but by crowding we
were able to keep out of the reach of the ray. The ray shot past
the ell and struck a wall a couple of inches from us.

I looked. The cement began to crumble under the intense heat.

Meanwhile, the police were having great difficulty with the
steelbolt-studded door into the room. Still, it was yielding a
bit.

"Hurry!" shouted Clutching Hand to LeCroix.

Kennedy had voluntarily placed himself in front of me in the ell.
Carefully, to avoid the ray, he took the asbestos-platinum shield
from his pocket and slid it forward as best he could over the wall
to the spot where the ray struck.

It deflected the ray.

But so powerful was it that even that part of the ray which was
deflected could be seen to strike the ceiling in the corner which
was of wood. Instantly, before Kennedy could even move the shield,
the wood burst into flames.

Above us now smoke was pouring into the room where the deflected
ray struck the floor and flames broke out.

"Confound him!" ground out Clutching Hand, as they saw it.

The other crooks backed away and stood, hesitating, not knowing
quite what to do.

The police had by this time finished battering in the door and had
rushed into the outer passage.

While the flames leaped up, the crooks closed the last door into
the room.

"Run!" shouted Clutching Hand, as they opened a secret gate
disclosing a spiral flight of iron steps.

A moment later all had disappeared except Clutching Hand himself.
The last door would hold only a few seconds, but Clutching Hand
was waiting to take advantage of even that. With a last frantic
effort he sought to direct the terrific ray at us. Elaine acted
instantly. With all her strength she rushed forward, overturning
the machine.

Clutching Hand uttered a growl and slowly raised his gun, taking
aim with the butt for a well-directed blow at her head.

Just then the door yielded and a policeman stuck his head and
shoulders through. His revolver rang out and Clutching Hand's
automatic flew out of his grasp, giving him just enough time to
dodge through and slam the secret door in the faces of the squad
as they rushed in.

Back of the house, Clutching Hand and the other crooks were now
passing through a bricked passage. The fire had got so far beyond
control by this time that it drove the police back from their
efforts to open the secret door. Thus the Clutching Hand had made
good his escape through the passage which led out, as we later
discovered, to the railroad tracks along the river.

"Down there--Mr. Kennedy--and Mr. Jameson," cried Elaine, pointing
at the trap which was hidden in the stifle.

The fire had gained terrific headway, but the police seized a
ladder and stuck it down into the basement.

Choking and sputtering, half suffocated, we staggered up.

"Are you hurt?" asked Elaine anxiously, taking Craig's arm.

"Not a bit--thanks to you!" he replied, forgetting all in meeting
the eager questioning of her wonderful eyes.




CHAPTER X

THE LIFE CURRENT


Assignments were being given out on the Star one afternoon, and I
was standing talking with several other reporter in the busy hum
of typewriters and clicking telegraphs.

"What do you think of that?" asked one of the fellows. "You're
something of a scientific detective, aren't you?"

Without laying claim to such a distinction, I took the paper and
read:

THE POISONED KISS AGAIN

Three More New York Women Report Being Kissed by Mysterious
Stranger--Later Fell into Deep Unconsciousness. What Is It?

I had scarcely finished, when one of the copy boys, dashing past
me, called, "You're wanted on the wire, Mr. Jameson."

I hurried over to the telephone and answered.

A musical voice responded to my hurried hello, and I hastened to
adopt my most polite tone.

"Is this Mr. Jameson?" asked the voice.

"Yes," I replied, not recognizing it.

"Well, Mr. Jameson, I've heard of you on the Star and I've just
had a very strange experience. I've had the poisoned kiss."

The woman did not pause to catch my exclamation of astonishment,
but went on, "It was like this. A man ran up to me on the street
and kissed me--and--I don't know how it was--but I became
unconscious--and I didn't come to for an hour--in a hospital--
fortunately. I don't know what would have happened if it hadn't
been that someone came to my assistance and the man fled. I
thought the Star would be interested."

"We are," I hastened to reply. "Will you give me your name?"

"Why, I am Mrs. Florence Leigh of number 20 Prospect Avenue,"
returned the voice. "Really, Mr. Jameson, something ought to be
done about these cases."

"It surely had," I assented, with much interest, writing her name
eagerly down on a card. "I'll be out to interview you, directly."

The woman thanked me and I hung up the receiver.

"Say," I exclaimed, hurrying over to the editor's desk, "here's
another woman on the wire who says she has received the poisoned
kiss.

"Suppose you take that assignment," the editor answered, sensing a
possible story.

I took it with alacrity, figuring out the quickest way by elevated
and surface car to reach the address.

The conductor of the trolley indicated Prospect Avenue and I
hurried up the street until I came to the house, a neat,
unpretentious place. Looking at the address on the card first to
make sure, I rang the bell.

I must say that I could scarcely criticize the poisoned kisser's
taste, for the woman who had opened the door certainly was
extraordinarily attractive.

"And you really were--put out by a kiss?" I queried, as she led me
into a neat sitting room.

"Absolutely--as much as if it had been by one of these poisoned
needles you read about," she replied confidently, hastening on to
describe the affair volubly.

It was beyond me.

"May I use your telephone?" I asked.

"Surely," she answered.

I called the laboratory. "Is that you, Craig?" I inquired.

"Yes, Walter," he answered, recognizing my voice.

"Say, Craig," I asked breathlessly, "what sort of kiss would
suffocate a person."

My only answer was an uproarious laugh from him at the idea.

"I know," I persisted, "but I've got the assignment from the Star-
-and I'm out here interviewing a woman about it. It's all right to
laugh--but here I am. I've found a case--names, dates and places.
I wish you'd explain the thing, then."

"Oh, all right, Walter," he replied indulgently. "I'll meet you as
soon as I can and help you out."

I hung up the receiver with an air of satisfaction. At least now I
would get an explanation of the woman's queer story.

"I'll clear this thing up," I said confidently. "My friend, Craig
Kennedy, the scientific detective is coming out here."

"Good! That fellow who attacked me ought to be shown up. All women
may not be as fortunate as I."

We waited patiently. Her story certainly was remarkable. She
remembered every detail up to a certain point--and then, as she
said, all was blankness.

The bell rang and the woman hastened to the door admitting
Kennedy.

"Hello, Walter," he greeted.

"This is certainly a most remarkable case, Craig," I said,
introducing him, and telling briefly what I had learned.

"And you actually mean to say that a kiss had the effect--" Just
then the telephone interrupted.

"Yes," she reasserted quickly. "Excuse me a second."

She answered the call. "Oh--why--yes, he's here. Do you want to
speak to him? Mr. Jameson, it's the Star."

"Confound it!" I exclaimed, "isn't that like the old man--dragging
me off this story before it's half finished in order to get
another. I'll have to go. I'll get this story from you, Craig."

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

The day before, in the suburban house, the Clutching Hand had been
talking to two of his emissaries, an attractive young woman and a
man.

They were Flirty Florrie and Dan the Dude.

"Now, I want you to get Kennedy," he said. "The way to do it is to
separate Kennedy and Elaine--see?"

"All right, Chief, we'll do it," they replied.

"I've rigged it so that you'll reach him through Jameson,
understand?"

They nodded eagerly as he told them the subtle plan.

Clutching Hand had scarcely left when Flirty Florrie began by
getting published in the papers the story which I had seen.

The next day she called me up from the suburban house. Having got
me to promise to see her, she had scarcely turned from the
telephone when Dan the Dude walked in from the next room.

"He's coming," she said.

Dan was carrying a huge stag head with a beautifully branched pair
of antlers. Under his arm was a coil of wire which he had
connected to the inside of the head.

"Fine!" he exclaimed. Then, pointing to the head, he added, "It's
all ready. See how I fixed it? That ought to please the Chief."

Dan moved quickly to the mantle and mounted a stepladder there by
which he had taken down the head, and started to replace the head
above the mantle.

He hooked the head on a nail.

"There," he said, unscrewing one of the beautiful brown glass eyes
of the stag.

Back of it could be seen a camera shutter. Dan worked the shutter
several times to see whether it was all right.

"One of those new quick shutter cameras," he explained.

Then he ran a couple of wires along the moulding, around the room
and into a closet, where he made the connection with a sort of
switchboard on which a button was marked, "SHUTTER" and the
switch, "WIND FILM."

"Now, Flirty," he said, coming out of the closet and pulling up
the shade which let a flood of sunlight into the room, "you see, I
want you to stand here--then, do your little trick. Get me?"

"I get you Steve," she laughed.

Just then the bell rang.

"That must be Jameson," she cried. "Now--get to your corner."

With a last look Dan went into the closet and shut the door.

Perhaps half an hour later, Clutching Hand himself called me up on
the telephone. It was he--not the Star--as I learned only too
late.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

I had scarcely got out of the house, as Craig told me afterwards,
when Flirty Florrie told all over again the embroidered tale that
had caught my ear.

Kennedy said nothing, but listened intently, perhaps betraying in
his face the scepticism he felt.

"You see," she said, still voluble and eager to convince him, "I
was only walking on the street. Here,--let me show you. It was
just like this."

She took his arm and before he knew it, led him to the spot on the
floor near the window which Dan had indicated. Meanwhile Dan was
listening attentively in his closet.

"Now--stand there. You are just as I was--only I didn't expect
anything."

She was pantomiming someone approaching stealthily while Kennedy
watched her with interest, tinged with doubt. Behind Craig, in his
closet, Dan was reaching for the switchboard button.

"You see," she said advancing quickly and acting her words, "he
placed his hands on my shoulders--so--then threw his arms about my
neck--so."

She said no more, but imprinted a deep, passionate kiss on
Kennedy's mouth, clinging closely to him. Before Kennedy could
draw away, Dan, in the closet, had pressed the button and the
switch several times in rapid succession.

"Th-that's very realistic," gasped Craig, a good deal taken aback
by the sudden osculatory assault.

He frowned.

"I--I'll look into the case," he said, backing away. "There may be
some scientific explanation--but--er--"

He was plainly embarrassed and hastened to make his adieux.

Kennedy had no more than shut the door before Dan, with a gleeful
laugh, burst out of the closet and flung his own arms about
Florrie in an embrace that might have been poisoned, it is true,
but was none the less real for that.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

How little impression the thing made on Kennedy can be easily seen
from the fact that on the way downtown that afternoon he stopped
at Martin's, on Fifth Avenue, and bought a ring--a very handsome
solitaire, the finest Martin had in the shop.

It must have been about the time that he decided to stop at
Martin's that the Dodge butler, Jennings, admitted a young lady
who presented a card on which was engraved the name

Miss FLORENCE LEIGH 20 Prospect Avenue.

As he handed Elaine the card, she looked up from the book she was
reading and took it.

"I don't know her," she said puckering her pretty brow. "Do you?
What does she look like?"

"I never saw her before, Miss Elaine," Jennings shrugged. "But she
is very well dressed."

"All right, show her in, Jennings. I'll see her."

Elaine moved into the drawing room, Jennings springing forward to
part the portieres for her and passing through the room quickly
where Flirty Florrie sat waiting. Flirty Florrie rose and stood
gazing at Elaine, apparently very much embarrassed, even after
Jennings had gone.

There was a short pause. The woman was the first to speak.

"It IS embarrassing," she said finally, "but, Miss Dodge, I have
come to you to beg for my love."

Elaine looked at her non-plussed.

"Yes," she continued, "you do not know it, but Craig Kennedy is
infatuated with you." She paused again, then added, "But he is
engaged to me."

Elaine stared at the woman. She was dazed. She could not believe
it.

"There is the ring," Flirty Florrie added indicating a very
impressive paste diamond.

Elaine frowned but said nothing. Her head was in a whirl. She
could not believe. Although Florrie was very much embarrassed, she
was quite as evidently very much wrought up. Quickly she reached
into her bag and drew out two photographs, without a word, handing
them to Elaine. Elaine took them reluctantly.

"There's the proof," Florrie said simply, choking a sob.

Elaine looked with a start. Sure enough, there was the neat living
room in the house on Prospect Avenue. In one picture Florrie had
her arms over Kennedy's shoulders. In the other, apparently, they
were passionately kissing.

Elaine slowly laid the photographs on the table.

"Please--please, Miss Dodge--give me back my lost love. You are
rich and beautiful--I am poor. I have only my good looks. But--I--
I love him--and he--loves me--and has promised to marry me."

Filled with wonder, and misgivings now, and quite as much
embarrassed at the woman's pleadings as the woman herself had
acted a moment before, Elaine tried to wave her off.

"Really--I--I don't know anything about all this. It--it doesn't
concern me. Please--go."

Florrie had broken down completely and was weeping softly into a
lace handkerchief.

She moved toward the door. Elaine followed her.

"Jennings--please see the lady to the door."

Back in the drawing room, Elaine almost seized the photographs and
hurried into the library where she could be alone. There she stood
gazing at them--doubt, wonder, and fear battling on her plastic
features.

Just then she heard the bell and Jennings in the hall.

She shoved the photographs away from her on the table.

It was Kennedy himself, close upon the announcement of the butler.
He was in a particularly joyous and happy mood, for he had stopped
at Martin's.

"How are you this afternoon?" he greeted Elaine gaily.

Elaine had been too overcome by what had just happened to throw it
off so easily, and received him with a quickly studied coolness.

Still, Craig, man-like, did not notice it at once. In fact he was
too busy gazing about to see that neither Jennings, Marie, nor the
duenna Aunt Josephine were visible. They were not and he quickly
took the ring from his pocket. Without waiting, he showed it to
Elaine. In fact, so sure had he been that everything was plain
sailing, that he seemed to take it almost for granted. Under other
circumstances, he would have been right. But not tonight.

Elaine very coolly admired the ring, as Craig might have eyed a
specimen on a microscope slide. Still, he did not notice.

He took the ring, about to put it on her finger. Elaine drew away.
Concealment was not in her frank nature.

She picked up the two photographs.

"What have you to say about those?" she asked cuttingly.

Kennedy, quite surprised, took them and looked at them. Then he
let them fall carelessly on the table and dropped into a chair,
his head back in a burst of laughter.

"Why--that was what they put over on Walter," he said. "He called
me up early this afternoon--told me he had discovered one of these
poisoned kiss cases you have read about in the papers. Think of
it--all that to pull a concealed camera! Such an elaborate
business--just to get me where they could fake this thing. I
suppose they've put some one up to saying she's engaged?"

Elaine was not so lightly affected. "But," she said severely,
repressing her emotion, "I don't understand, MR. Kennedy, how
scientific inquiry into 'the poisoned kiss' could necessitate this
sort of thing."

She pointed at the photographs accusingly.

"But," he began, trying to explain.

"No buts," she interrupted.

"Then you believe that I--"

"How can you, as a scientist, ask me to doubt the camera," she
insinuated, very coldly turning away.

Kennedy rapidly began to see that it was far more serious than he
had at first thought.

"Very well," he said with a touch of impatience, "if my word is
not to be taken--I--I'll--"

He had seized his hat and stick.

Elaine did not deign to answer.

Then, without a word he stalked out of the door.

As he did so, Elaine hastily turned and took a few steps after
him, as if to recall her words, then stopped, and her pride got
the better of her.

She walked slowly back to the chair by the table--the chair he had
been sitting in--sank down into it and cried.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Kennedy was moping in the laboratory the next day when I came in.

Just what the trouble was, I did not know, but I had decided that
it was up to me to try to cheer him up.

"Say, Craig," I began, trying to overcome his fit of blues.

Kennedy, filled with his own thoughts, paid no attention to me.
Still, I kept on.

Finally he got up and, before I knew it, he took me by the ear and
marched me into the next room.

I saw that what he needed chiefly was to be let alone, and he went
back to his chair, dropping down into it and banging his fists on
the table. Under his breath he loosed a small volley of bitter
expletives. Then he jumped up.

"By George--I WILL," he muttered.

I poked my head out of the door in time to see him grab up his hat
and coat and dash from the room, putting his coat on as he went.

"He's a nut today," I exclaimed to myself.

Though I did not know, yet, of the quarrel, Kennedy had really
struggled with himself until he was willing to put his pride in
his pocket and had made up his mind to call on Elaine again.

As he entered, he saw that it was really of no use, for only Aunt
Josephine was in the library.

"Oh, Mr. Kennedy," she said innocently enough, "I'm so sorry she
isn't here. There's been something troubling her and she won't
tell me what it is. But she's gone to call on a young woman, a
Florence Leigh, I think."

"Florence Leigh!" exclaimed Craig with a start and a frown. "Let
me use your telephone."

I had turned my attention in the laboratory to a story I was
writing, when I heard the telephone ring. It was Craig. Without a
word of apology for his rudeness, which I knew had been purely
absent-minded, I heard him saying, "Walter--meet me in half an
hour outside that Florence Leigh's house."

He was gone in a minute, giving me scarcely time to call back that
I would.

Then, with a hasty apology for his abruptness, he excused himself,
leaving Aunt Josephine wondering at his strange actions.

At about the same time that Craig had left the laboratory, at the
Dodge house Elaine and Aunt Josephine had been in the hall near
the library. Elaine was in her street dress.

"I'm going out, Auntie," she said with an attempted gaiety. "And,"
she added, "if anyone should ask for me, I'll be there."

She had showed her a card on which was engraved, the name and
address of Florence Leigh.

"All right, dear," answered Aunt Josephine, not quite clear in her
mind what subtle change there was in Elaine.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Half an hour later I was waiting near the house in the suburbs to
which I had been directed by the strange telephone call the day
before. I noticed that it was apparently deserted. The blinds were
closed and a "To Let" sign was on the side of the house.

"Hello, Walter," cried Craig at last, bustling along. He stopped a
moment to look at the house. Then, together, we went up the steps
and we rang the bell, gazing about.

"Strange," muttered Craig. "The house looks deserted."

He pointed out the sign and the generally unoccupied look of the
place. Nor was there any answer to our ring. Kennedy paused only a
second, in thought.

"Come on, Walter," he said with a sudden decision. "We've got to
get in here somehow."

He led the way around the side of the house to a window, and with
a powerful grasp, wrenched open the closed shutters. He had just
smashed the window viciously with his foot when a policeman
appeared.

"Hey, you fellows--what are you doing there?" he shouted.

Craig paused a second, then pulled his card from his pocket.

"Just the man I want," he parried, much to the policeman's
surprise, "There's something crooked going on here. Follow us in."

We climbed into the window. There was the same living room we had
seen the day before. But it was now bare and deserted. Everything
was gone except an old broken chair. Craig and I were frankly
amazed at the complete and sudden change and I think the policeman
was a little surprised, for he had thought the place occupied.

"Come on," cried Kennedy, beckoning us on.

Quickly he rushed through the house. There was not a thing in it
to change the deserted appearance of the first floor. At last it
occurred to Craig to grope his way down cellar. There was nothing
there, either, except a bin, as innocent of coal as Mother
Hubbard's cupboard was of food. For several minutes we hunted
about without discovering a thing.

Kennedy had been carefully going over the place and was at the
other side of the cellar from ourselves when I saw him stop and
gaze at the floor. He was not looking, apparently, so much as
listening. I strained my ears, but could make out nothing. Before
I could say anything, he raised his hand for silence. Apparently
he had heard something.

"Hide," he whispered suddenly to us.

Without another word, though for the life of me I could make
nothing out of it, I pulled the policeman into a little angle of
the wall nearby, while Craig slipped into a similar angle.

We waited a moment. Nothing happened. Had he been seeing things or
hearing things, I wondered?

From our hidden vantage we could now see a square piece in the
floor, perhaps five feet in diameter, slowly open up as though on
a pivot. Beneath it we could make out a tube-like hole, perhaps
three feet across, with a covered top. It slowly opened.

A weird and sinister figure of a man appeared. Over his head he
wore a peculiar helmet with hideous glass pieces over the eyes,
and tubes that connected with a tank which he carried buckled to
his back. As he slowly dragged himself out, I could wonder only at
the outlandish headgear.

Quickly he closed down the cover of the tube, but not before a
vile effluvium seemed to escape, and penetrate even to us in our
hiding places. As he moved forward, Kennedy gave a flying leap at
him, and we followed with a regular football interference.

It was the work of only a moment for us to subdue and hold him,
while Craig ripped off the helmet.

It was Dan the Dude.

"What's that thing?" I puffed, as I helped Craig with the
headgear.

"An oxygen helmet," he replied. "There must be air down the tube
that cannot be breathed."

He went over to the tube. Carefully he opened the top and gazed
down, starting back a second later, with his face puckered up at
the noxious odor.

"Sewer gas," he ejaculated, as he slammed the cover down. Then he
added to the policeman, "Where do you suppose it comes from?"

"Why," replied the officer, "the St. James Drain--an old sewer--is
somewhere about these parts."

Kennedy puckered his face as he gazed at our prisoner. He reached
down quickly and lifted something off the man's coat.

"Golden hair," he muttered. "Elaine's!"

A moment later he seized the man and shook him roughly.

"Where is she--tell me?" he demanded.

The man snarled some kind of reply, refusing to say a word about
her.

"Tell me," repeated Kennedy.

"Humph!" snorted the prisoner, more close-mouthed than ever.

Kennedy was furious. As he sent the man reeling away from him, he
seized the oxygen helmet and began putting it on. There was only
one thing to do--to follow the clue of the golden strands of hair.

Down into the pest hole he went, his head protected by the oxygen
helmet. As he cautiously took one step after another down a series
of iron rungs inside the hole, he found that the water was up to
his chest. At the bottom of the perpendicular pit was a narrow low
passage way, leading off. It was just about big enough to get
through, but he managed to grope along it. He came at last to the
main drain, an old stone-walled sewer, as murky a place as could
well be imagined, filled with the foulest sewer gas. He was hardly
able to keep his feet in the swirling, bubbling water that swept
past, almost up to his neck.

The minutes passed as the policeman and I watched our prisoner in
the cellar, by the tube. I looked anxiously at my watch.

"Craig!" I shouted at last, unable to control my fears for him.

No answer. To go down after him seemed out of the question.

By this time, Craig had come to a small open chamber into which
the sewer widened. On the wall he found another series of iron
rungs up which he climbed. The gas was terrible.

As he neared the top of the ladder, he came to a shelf-like
aperture in the sewer chamber, and gazed about. It was horribly
dark. He reached out and felt a piece of cloth. Anxiously he
pulled on it. Then he reached further into the darkness.

There was Elaine, unconscious, apparently dead.

He shook her, endeavoring to wake her up. But it was no use.

In desperation Craig carried her down the ladder.

With our prisoner, we could only look helplessly around. Again and
again I looked at my watch as the minutes lengthened. Suppose the
oxygen gave out?

"By George, I'm going down after him," I cried in desperation.

"Don't do it," advised the policeman. "You'll never get out."

One whiff of the horrible gas told me that he was right. I should
not have been able to go fifty feet in it. I looked at him in
despair. It was impossible.

"Listen," said the policeman, straining his ears.

There was indeed a faint noise from the black depths below us. A
rope alongside the rough ladder began to move, as though someone
was pulling it taut. We gazed down.

"Craig! Craig!" I called. "Is that you?"

No answer. But the rope still moved. Perhaps the helmet made it
impossible for him to hear.

He had struggled back in the swirling current almost exhausted by
his helpless burden. Holding Elaine's head above the surface of
the water and pulling on the rope to attract my attention, for he
could neither hear nor shout, he had taken a turn of the rope
about Elaine. I tried pulling on it. There was something heavy on
the other end and I kept on pulling.

At last I could make out Kennedy dimly mounting the ladder. The
weight was the unconscious body of Elaine which he steadied as he
mounted. I tugged harder and he slowly came up.

Together, at last, the policeman and I reached down and pulled
them out.

We placed Elaine on the cellar floor, as comfortably as was
possible, and the policeman began his first-aid motions for
resuscitation.

"No--no," cried Kennedy, "Not here--take her up where the air is
fresher."

With his revolver still drawn to overawe the prisoner, the
policeman forced him to aid us in carrying her up the rickety
flight of cellar steps. Kennedy followed quickly, unscrewing the
oxygen helmet as he went.

In the deserted living room we deposited our senseless burden,
while Kennedy, the helmet off now, bent over her.

"Quick--quick!" he cried to the officer, "An ambulance!"

"But the prisoner," the policeman indicated.

"Hurry--hurry--I'll take care of him," urged Craig, seizing the
policeman's pistol and thrusting it into his pocket. "Walter--help
me."

He was trying the ordinary methods of resuscitation. Meanwhile the
officer had hurried out, seeking the nearest telephone, while we
worked madly to bring Elaine back.

Again and again Kennedy bent and outstretched her arms, trying to
induce respiration. So busy was I that for the moment I forgot our
prisoner.

But Dan had seen his chance. Noiselessly he picked up the old
chair in the room and with it raised was approaching Kennedy to
knock him out.

Before I knew it myself, Kennedy had heard him. With a half
instinctive motion, he drew the revolver from his pocket and,
almost before I could see it, had shot the man. Without a word he
returned the gun to his pocket and again bent over Elaine, without
so much as a look at the crook who sank to the floor, dropping the
chair from his nerveless hands.

Already the policeman had got an ambulance which was now tearing
along to us.

Frantically Kennedy was working.

A moment he paused and looked at me--hopeless.

Just then, outside, we could hear the ambulance, and a doctor and
two attendants hurried up to the door. Without a word the doctor
seemed to appreciate the gravity of the case.

He finished his examination and shook his head.

"There is no hope--no hope," he said slowly.

Kennedy merely stared at him. But the rest of us instinctively
removed our hats.

Kennedy gazed at Elaine, overcome. Was this the end?

It was not many minutes later that Kennedy had Elaine in the
little sitting room off the laboratory, having taken her there in
the ambulance, with the doctor and two attendants.

Elaine's body had been placed on a couch, covered by a blanket,
and the shades were drawn. The light fell on her pale face.

There was something incongruous about death and the vast
collection of scientific apparatus, a ghastly mocking of humanity.
How futile was it all in the presence of the great destroyer?

Aunt Josephine had arrived, stunned, and a moment later, Perry
Bennett. As I looked at the sorrowful party, Aunt Josephine rose
slowly from her position on her knees where she had been weeping
silently beside Elaine, and pressed her hands over her eyes, with
every indication of faintness.

Before any of us could do anything, she had staggered into the
laboratory itself, Bennett and I following quickly. There I was
busy for some time getting restoratives.

Meanwhile Kennedy, beside the couch, with an air of desperate
determination, turned away and opened a cabinet. From it he took a
large coil and attached it to a storage battery, dragging the
peculiar apparatus near Elaine's couch.

To an electric light socket, Craig attached wires. The doctor
watched him in silent wonder.

"Doctor," he asked slowly as he worked, "do you know of Professor
Leduc of the Nantes Ecole de Medicin?"

"Why--yes," answered the doctor, "but what of him?"

"Then you know of his method of electrical resuscitation."

"Yes--but--" He paused, looking apprehensively at Kennedy.

Craig paid no attention to his fears, but approaching the couch on
which Elaine lay, applied the electrodes. "You see," he explained,
with forced calmness, "I apply the anode here--the cathode there."

The ambulance surgeon looked on excitedly, as Craig turned on the
current, applying it to the back of the neck and to the spine.

For some minutes the machine worked.

Then the young doctor's eyes began to bulge.

"My heavens!" he cried under his breath. "Look!"

Elaine's chest had slowly risen and fallen. Kennedy, his attention
riveted on his work, applied himself with redoubled efforts. The
young doctor looked on with increased wonder.

"Look! The color in her face! See her lips!" he cried.

At last her eyes slowly fluttered open--then closed.

Would the machine succeed? Or was it just the galvanic effect of
the current? The doctor noticed it and quickly placed his ear to
her heart. His face was a study in astonishment. The minutes sped
fast.

To us outside, who had no idea what was transpiring in the other
room, the minutes were leaden-feeted. Aunt Josephine, weak but now
herself again, was sitting nervously.

Just then the door opened.

I shall never forget the look on the young ambulance surgeon's
face, as he murmured under his breath, "Come here--the age of
miracles is not passed--look!"

Raising his finger to indicate that we were to make no noise, he
led us into the other room.

Kennedy was bending over the couch.

Elaine, her eyes open, now, was gazing up at him, and a wan smile
flitted over her beautiful face.

Kennedy had taken her hand, and as he heard us enter, turned half
way to us, while we stared in blank wonder from Elaine to the
weird and complicated electrical apparatus.

"It is the life-current," he said simply, patting the Leduc
apparatus with his other hand.




CHAPTER XI

THE HOUR OF THREE


With the ominous forefinger of his Clutching Hand extended, the
master criminal emphasized his instructions to his minions.

"Perry Bennett, her lawyer, is in favor again with Elaine Dodge,"
he was saying. "She and Kennedy are on the outs even yet. But they
may become reconciled. Then she'll have that fellow on our trail
again. Before that happens, we must 'get' her--see?"

It was in the latest headquarters to which Craig had chased the
criminal, in one of the toughest parts of the old Greenwich
village, on the west side of New York, not far from the river
front.

They were all seated in a fairly large but dingy old room, in
which were several chairs, a rickety table and, against the wall,
a roll-top desk on the top of which was a telephone.

Several crooks of the gang were sitting about, smoking.

"Now," went on Clutching Hand, "I want you, Spike, to follow them.
See what they do--where they go. It's her birthday. Something's
bound to occur that will give you a lead. All you've got to do is
to use your head. Get me?"

Spike rose, nodded, picked up his hat and coat and squirmed out on
his mission, like the snake that he was.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

It was, as Clutching Hand had said, Elaine's birthday. She had
received many callers and congratulations, innumerable costly and
beautiful tokens of remembrance from her countless friends and
admirers. In the conservatory of the Dodge house Elaine, Aunt
Josephine, and Susie Martin were sitting discussing not only the
happy occasion, but, more, the many strange events of the past few
weeks.

"Well," cried a familiar voice behind them. "What would a certain
blonde young lady accept as a birthday present from her family
lawyer?"

All three turned in surprise.

"Oh, Mr. Bennett," cried Elaine. "How you startled us!"

He laughed and repeated his question, adopting the tone that he
had once used in the days when he had been more in favor with the
pretty heiress, before the advent of Kennedy.

Elaine hesitated. She was thinking not so much of his words as of
Kennedy. To them all, however, it seemed that she was unable to
make up her mind what, in the wealth of her luxury, she would
like.

Susie Martin had been wondering whether, now that Bennett was
here, she were not de trop, and she looked at her wrist watch
mechanically. As she did so, an idea occurred to her.

"Why not one of these?" she cried impulsively, indicating the
watch. "Father has some beauties at the shop."

"Oh, good," exclaimed Elaine, "how sweet!"

She welcomed the suggestion, for she had been thinking that
perhaps Bennett might be hinting too seriously at a solitaire.

"So that strikes your fancy?" he asked. "Then let's all go to the
shop. Miss Martin will personally conduct the tour, and we shall
have our pick of the finest stock."

A moment later the three young people went out and were quickly
whirled off down the Avenue in the Dodge town car.

It was too gay a party to notice a sinister figure following them
in a cab. But as they entered the fashionable jewelry shop, Spike,
who had alighted, walked slowly down the street.

Chatting with animation, the three moved over to the watch
counter, while the crook, with a determination not to risk missing
anything, entered the shop door, too.

"Mr. Thomas," asked Susie as her father's clerk bowed to them,
"please show Miss Dodge the wrist watches father was telling
about."

With another deferential bow, the clerk hastened to display a case
of watches and they bent over them. As each new watch was pointed
out, Elaine was delighted.

Unobserved, the crook walked over near enough to hear what was
going on.

At last, with much banter and yet care, Elaine selected one that
was indeed a beauty and was about to snap it on her dainty wrist,
when the clerk interrupted.

"I beg pardon," he suggested, "but I'd advise you to leave it to
be regulated, if you please."

"Yes, indeed," chimed in Susie. "Father always advises that."

Reluctantly, Elaine handed it over to the clerk.

"Oh, thank you, ever so much, Mr. Bennett," she said as he
unobtrusively paid for the watch and gave the address to which it
was to be sent when ready.

A moment later they went out and entered the car again.

As they did so, Spike, who had been looking various things in the
next case over as if undecided, came up to the watch counter.

"I'm making a present," he remarked confidentially to the clerk.
"How about those bracelet watches?"

The clerk pulled out some of the cheaper ones.

"No," he said thoughtfully, pointing out a tray in the show case,
"something like those."

He ended by picking out one identically like that which Elaine had
selected, and started to pay for it.

"Better have it regulated," repeated the clerk.

"No," he objected hastily, shaking his head and paying the money
quickly. "It's a present--and I want it tonight."

He took the watch and left the store hurriedly.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

In the laboratory, Kennedy was working over an oblong oak box,
perhaps eighteen inches in length and half as high. In the box I
could see, besides other apparatus, two good sized spools of fine
wire.

"What's all that?" I asked inquisitively.

"Another of the new instruments that scientific detectives use,"
he responded, scarcely looking up, "a little magnetic wizard, the
telegraphone."

"Which is?" I prompted.

"Something we detectives might use to take down and 'can'
telephone and other conversations. When it is attached properly to
a telephone, it records everything that is said over the wire."

"How does it work?" I asked, much mystified.

"Well, it is based on an entirely new principle, in every way
different from the phonograph," he explained. "As you can see
there are no discs or cylinders, but these spools of extremely
fine steel wire. The record is not made mechanically on a
cylinder, but electromagnetically on this wire."

"How?" I asked, almost incredulously.

"To put it briefly," he went on, "small portions of magnetism, as
it were, are imparted to fractions of the steel wire as it passes
between two carbon electric magnets. Each impression represents a
sound wave. There is no apparent difference in the wire, yet each
particle of steel undergoes an electromagnetic transformation by
which the sound is indelibly imprinted on it."

"Then you scrape the wire, just as you shave records to use it
over again?" I suggested.

"No," he replied. "You pass a magnet over it and the magnet
automatically erases the record. Rust has no effect. The record
lasts as long as steel lasts."

Craig continued to tinker tantalizingly with the machine which had
been invented by a Dane, Valdemar Poulsen.

He had scarcely finished testing out the telegraphone, when the
laboratory door opened and a clean-cut young man entered.

Kennedy, I knew, had found that the routine work of the Clutching
Hand case was beyond his limited time and had retained this young
man, Raymond Chase, to attend to that.

Chase was a young detective whom Craig had employed on shadowing
jobs and as a stool pigeon on other cases, and we had all the
confidence in the world in him.

Just now what worried Craig was the situation with Elaine, and I
fancied that he had given Chase some commission in connection with
that.

"I've got it, Mr. Kennedy," greeted Chase with quiet modesty.

"Good," responded Craig heartily. "I knew you would."

"Got what?" I asked a moment later.

Kennedy nodded for Chase to answer.

"I've located the new residence of Flirty Florrie," he replied.

I saw what Kennedy was after at once. Flirty Florrie and Dan the
Dude had caused the quarrel between himself and Elaine. Dan the
Dude was dead. But Flirty Florrie might be forced to explain it.

"That's fine," he added, exultingly. "Now, I'll clear that thing
up."

He took a hasty step to the telephone, put his hand on the
receiver and was about to take it off the hook. Then he paused,
and I saw his face working. The wound Elaine had given his
feelings was deep. It had not yet quite healed.

Finally, his pride, for Kennedy's was a highly sensitive nature,
got the better of him.

"No," he said, half to himself, "not--yet."

Elaine had returned home.

Alone, her thoughts naturally went back to what had happened
recently to interrupt a friendship which had been the sweetest in
her life.

"There MUST be some mistake," she murmured pensively to herself,
thinking of the photograph Flirty had given her. "Oh, why did I
send him away? Why didn't I believe him?"

Then she thought of what had happened, of how she had been seized
by Dan the Dude in the deserted house, of how the noxious gas had
overcome her.

They had told her of how Craig had risked his life to save her,
how she had been brought home, still only half alive, after his
almost miraculous work with the new electric machine.

There was his picture. She had not taken that away. As she looked
at it, a wave of feeling came over her. Mechanically, she put out
her hand to the telephone.

She was about to take off the receiver, when something seemed to
stay her hand. She wanted him to come to her.

And, if either of them had called the other just then, they would
have probably crossed wires.

Of such stuff are the quarrels of lovers.

Craig's eye fell on the telegraphone, and an idea seemed to occur
to him.

"Walter, you and Chase bring that thing along," he said a moment
later.

He paused long enough to take a badge from the drawer of a
cabinet, and went out. We followed him, lugging the telegraphone.

At last we came to the apartment house at which Chase had located
the woman.

"There it is," he pointed out, as I gave a groan of relief, for
the telegraphone was getting like lead.

Kennedy nodded and drew from his pocket the badge I had seen him
take from the cabinet.

"Now, Chase," he directed, "you needn't go in with us. Walter and
I can manage this, now. But don't get out of touch with me. I
shall need you any moment--certainly tomorrow."

I saw that the badge read, Telephone Inspector.

"Walter," he smiled, "you're elected my helper."

We entered the apartment house hall and found a Negro boy in
charge of the switchboard. It took Craig only a moment to convince
the boy that he was from the company and that complaints had been
made by some anonymous tenant.

"You look over that switchboard, Kelly," he winked at me, "while I
test out the connections back here. There must be something wrong
with the wires or there wouldn't be so many complaints."

He had gone back of the switchboard and the Negro, still
unsuspicious, watched without understanding what it was all about.

"I don't know," Craig muttered finally for the benefit of the boy,
"but I think I'll have to leave that tester after all. Say, if I
put it here, you'll have to be careful not to let anyone meddle
with it. If you do, there'll be the deuce to pay. See?"

Kennedy had already started to fasten the telegraphone to the
wires he had selected from the tangle.

At last he finished and stood up.

"Don't disturb it and don't let anyone else touch it," he ordered.
"Better not tell anyone--that's the best way. I'll be back for it
tomorrow probably."

"Yas sah," nodded the boy, with a bow, as we went out.

We returned to the laboratory, where there seemed to be nothing we
could do now except wait for something to happen.

Kennedy, however, employed the time by plunging into work, most of
the time experimenting with a peculiar little coil to which ran
the wires of an ordinary electric bell.

Back in the new hang-out, the Clutching Hand was laying down the
law to his lieutenants and heelers, when Spike at last entered.

"Huh!" growled the master criminal, covering the fact that he was
considerably relieved to see him at last, "where have YOU been?
I've been off on a little job myself and got back."

Spike apologized profusely. He had succeeded so easily that he had
thought to take a little time to meet up with an old pal whom he
ran across, just out of prison.

"Yes sir," he replied hastily, "well, I went over to the Dodge
house, and I saw them finally. Followed them into a jewelry shop.
That lawyer bought her a wrist watch. So I bought one just like
it. I thought perhaps we could--" "Give it to me," growled
Clutching Hand, seizing it the moment Slim displayed it. "And
don't butt in--see?"

From the capacious desk, the master criminal pulled a set of small
drills, vices, and other jeweler's tools and placed them on the
table.

"All right," he relented. "Now, do you see what I have just
thought of--no? This is just the chance. Look at me."

The heelers gathered around him, peering curiously at their master
as he worked at the bracelet watch.

Carefully he plied his hands to the job, regardless of time.

"There," he exclaimed at last, holding the watch up where they
could all see it. "See!"

He pulled out the stem to set the hands and slowly twisted it
between his thumb and finger. He turned the hands until they were
almost at the point of three o'clock.

Then he held the watch out where all could see it.

They bent closer and strained their eyes at the little second hand
ticking away merrily.

As the minute hand touched three, from the back of the case, as if
from the casing itself, a little needle, perhaps a quarter of an
inch, jumped out. It seemed to come from what looked like merely a
small inset in the decorations.

"You see what will happen at the hour of three?" he asked.

No one said a word, as he held up a vial which he had drawn from
his pocket. On it they could read the label, "Ricinus."

"One of the most powerful poisons in the world!" he exclaimed.
"Enough here to kill a regiment!"

They fairly gasped and looked at it with horror, exchanging
glances. Then they looked at him in awe. There was no wonder that
Clutching Hand kept them in line, once he had a crook in his
power.

Opening the vial carefully, he dipped in a thin piece of glass and
placed a tiny drop in a receptacle back of the needle and on the
needle itself.

Altogether it savored of the ancient days of the Borgias with
their weird poisoned rings.

Then he dropped the vial back into his pocket, pressed a spring,
and the needle went back into its unsuspected hiding place.

"I've set my invention to go off at three o'clock," he concluded.
"Tomorrow forenoon, it will have to be delivered early--and I
don't believe we shall be troubled any longer by Miss Elaine
Dodge," he added venomously.

Even the crooks, hardened as they were, could only gasp.

Calmly he wrapped up the apparently innocent engine of destruction
and handed it to Spike.

"See that she gets it in time," he said merely.

"I will, sir," answered Spike, taking it gingerly.

Flirty Florrie had returned that afternoon, late, from some
expedition on which she had been sent.

Rankling in her heart yet was the death of her lover, Dan the
Dude. For, although in her sphere of crookdom they are neither
married nor given in marriage, still there is a brand of loyalty
that higher circles might well copy. Sacred to the memory of the
dead, however, she had one desire--revenge.

Thus when she arrived home, she went to the telephone to report
and called a number, 4494 Greenwich.

"Hello, Chief," she repeated. "This is Flirty. Have you done
anything yet in the little matter we talked about?"

"Say--be careful of names--over the wire," came a growl.

"You know--what I mean."

"Yes. The trick will be pulled off at three o'clock." "Good!" she
exclaimed. "Good-bye and thank you."

With his well-known caution Clutching Hand did not even betray
names over the telephone if he could help it.

Flirty hung up the receiver with satisfaction. The manes of the
departed Dan might soon rest in peace!

The next day, early in the forenoon, a young man with a small
package carefully done up came to the Dodge house.

"From Martin's, the jeweler's, for Miss Dodge," he said to
Jennings at the door.

Elaine and Aunt Josephine were sitting in the library when
Jennings announced him.

"Oh, it's my watch," cried Elaine. "Show him in."

Jennings bowed and did so. Spike entered, and handed the package
to Elaine, who signed her name excitedly and opened it.

"Just look, Auntie," she exclaimed. "Isn't it stunning?"

"Very pretty," commented Aunt Josephine.

Elaine put the watch on her wrist and admired it.

"Is it all right?" asked Spike.

"Yes, yes," answered Elaine. "You may go."

He went out, while Elaine gazed rapturously at the new trinket
while it ticked off the minutes--this devilish instrument.

Early the same morning Kennedy went around again to the apartment
house and, cautious not to be seen by Flirty, recovered the
telegraphone. Together we carried it to the laboratory.

There he set up a little instrument that looked like a wedge
sitting up on end, in the face of which was a dial. Through it he
began to run the wire from the spools, and, taking an earpiece,
put another on my head over my ears.

"You see," he explained, "the principle on which this is based is
that a mass of tempered steel may be impressed with and will
retain magnetic fluxes varying in density and in sign in adjacent
portions of itself--little deposits of magnetic impulse.

"When the telegraphone is attached to the telephone wire, the
currents that affect the receiver also affect the coils of the
telegraphone and the disturbance set up causes a deposit of
magnetic impulse on the steel wire.

"When the wire is again run past these coils with a receiver such
as I have here in circuit with the coils, a light vibration is set
up in the receiver diaphragm which reproduces the sound of
speech." He turned a switch and we listened eagerly. There was no
grating and thumping, as he controlled the running off of the
wire. We were listening to everything that had been said over the
telephone during the time since we left the machine.

First came several calls from people with bills and she put them
off most adroitly.

Then we heard a call that caused Kennedy to look at me quickly,
stop the machine and start at that point over again.

"That's what I wanted," he said as we listened in:

"Give me 4494 Greenwich."

"Hello."

"Hello, Chief. This is Flirty. Have you done anything yet in the
little matter we talked about?

"Say--be careful of names--over the wire."

"You know--what I mean."

"Yes, the trick will be pulled off at three o'clock.

"Good! Good-bye and thank you!"

"Good-bye."

Kennedy stopped the machine and I looked at him blankly.

"She called Greenwich 4494 and was told that the trick would be
pulled off at three o'clock today," he ruminated.

"What trick?" I asked.

He shook his head. "I don't know. That is what we must find out. I
hadn't expected a tip like that. What I wanted was to find out how
to get at the Clutching Hand."

He paused and considered a minute, then moved to the telephone.

"There's only one thing to do and that's to follow out my original
scheme," he said energetically. "Information, please."

"Where is Greenwich 4494?" he asked a moment later.

The minutes passed. "Thank you," he cried, writing down on a pad
an address over on the west side near the river front. Then
turning to me he explained, "Walter, we've got him at last!"

Craig rose and put on his hat and coat, thrusting a pair of opera
glasses into his pocket, in case we should want to observe the
place at a distance. I followed him excitedly. The trail was hot.

Kennedy and I came at last to the place on the West Side where the
crooked streets curved off.

Instead of keeping on until he came to the place we sought, he
turned and quickly slipped behind the shelter of a fence. There
was a broken board in the fence and he bent down, gazing through
with the opera glasses.

Across the lot was the new headquarters, a somewhat dilapidated
old-fashioned brick house of several generations back. Through the
glass we could see an evil-countenanced crook slinking along. He
mounted the steps and rang the bell, turning as he waited.

From a small aperture in the doorway looked out another face,
equally evil. Under cover, the crook made the sign of the
clutching hand twice and was admitted.

"That's the place, all right," whispered Kennedy with
satisfaction.

He hurried to a telephone booth where he called several numbers.
Then we returned to the laboratory, while Kennedy quickly figured
out a plan of action. I knew Chase was expected there soon.

From the table he picked up the small coil over which I had seen
him working, and attached it to the bell and some batteries. He
replaced it on the table, while I watched curiously.

"A selenium cell," he explained. "Only when light falls on it does
it become a good conductor of electricity. Then the bell will
ring."

Just before making the connection he placed his hat over the cell.
Then he lifted the hat. The light fell on it and the bell rang. He
replaced the hat and the bell stopped. It was evidently a very
peculiar property of the substance, selenium.

Just then there came a knock at the door. I opened it.

"Hello, Chase," greeted Kennedy. "Well, I've found the new
headquarters all right,--over on the west side."

Kennedy picked up the selenium cell and a long coil of fine wire
which he placed in a bag. Then he took another bag already packed
and, shifting them between us, we hurried down town.

Near the vacant lot, back of the new headquarters, was an old
broken down house. Through the rear of it we entered.

I started back in astonishment as we found eight or ten policemen
already there. Kennedy had ordered them to be ready for a raid and
they had dropped in one at a time without attracting attention.

"Well, men," he greeted them, "I see you found the place all
right. Now, in a little while Jameson will return with two wires.
Attach them to the bell which I will leave here. When it rings,
raid the house. Jameson will lead you to it. Come, Walter," he
added, picking up the bags.

Ten minutes later, outside the new headquarters, a crouched up
figure, carrying a small package, his face hidden under his soft
hat and up-turned collar, could have been seen slinking along
until he came to the steps.

He went up and peered through the aperture of the doorway. Then he
rang the bell. Twice he raised his hand and clenched it in the now
familiar clutch.

A crook inside saw it through the aperture and opened the door.
The figure entered and almost before the door was shut tied the
masking handkerchief over his face, which hid his identity from
even the most trusted lieutenants. The crook bowed to the chief,
who, with a growl as though of recognition, moved down the hall.

As he came to the room from which Spike had been sent on his
mission, the same group was seated in the thick tobacco smoke.

"You fellows clear out," he growled. "I want to be alone."

"The old man is peeved," muttered one, outside, as they left.

The weird figure gazed about the room to be sure that he was
alone.

When Craig and I left the police he had given me most minute
instructions which I was now following out to the letter.

"I want you to hide there," he said, indicating a barrel back of
the house next to the hang-out. "When you see a wire come down
from the headquarters, take it and carry it across the lot to the
old house. Attach it to the bell; then wait. When it rings, raid
the Clutching Hand joint."

I waited what seemed to be an interminable time back of the barrel
and it is no joke hiding back of a barrel.

Finally, however, I saw a coil of fine wire drop rapidly to the
ground from a window somewhere above. I made a dash for it, as
though I were trying to rush the trenches, seized my prize and
without looking back to see where it came from, beat a hasty
retreat.

Around the lot I skirted, until at last I reached the place where
the police were waiting. Quickly we fastened the wire to the bell.

We waited.

Not a sound from the bell.

Up in the room in the joint, the hunched up figure stood by the
table. He had taken his hat off and placed it carefully on the
table, and was now waiting.

Suddenly a noise at the door startled him. He listened. Then he
backed away from the door and drew a revolver.

As the door slowly opened there entered another figure, hat over
his eyes, collar up, a handkerchief over his face, the exact
counterpart of the first!

For a moment each glared at the other.

"Hands up!" shouted the first figure, hoarsely, moving the gun and
closing the door, with his foot.

The newcomer slowly raised his crooked hand over his head, as the
blue steel revolver gaped menacingly.

With a quick movement of the other hand, the first sinister figure
removed the handkerchief from his face and straightened up.

It was Kennedy!

"Come over to the center of the room," ordered Kennedy.

Clutching Hand obeyed, eyeing his captor closely.

"Now lay your weapons on the table."

He tossed down a revolver.

The two still faced each other.

"Take off that handkerchief!"

It was a tense moment. Slowly Clutching Hand started to obey. Then
he stopped. Kennedy was just about to thunder, "Go on," when the
criminal calmly remarked, "You've got ME all right, Kennedy, but
in twenty minutes Elaine Dodge will be dead!"

He said it with a nonchalance that might have deceived anyone less
astute than Kennedy. Suddenly there flashed over Craig the words:
"THE TRICK WILL BE PULLED OFF AT THREE O'CLOCK!"

There was no fake about that. Kennedy frowned. If he killed
Clutching Hand, Elaine would die. If he fought, he must either
kill or be killed. If he handed Clutching Hand over, all he had to
do was to keep quiet. He looked at his watch. It was twenty-five
minutes of three.

What a situation!

He had caught a prisoner he dared not molest--yet.

"What do you mean--tell me?" demanded Kennedy with forced calm.

"Yesterday Mr. Bennett bought a wrist watch for Elaine," the
Clutching Hand said quietly. "They left it to be regulated. One of
my men bought one just like it. Mine was delivered to her today."

"A likely story!" doubted Kennedy.

For answer, the Clutching Hand pointed to the telephone.

Kennedy reached for it.

"One thing," interrupted the Clutching Hand. "You are a man of
honor."

"Yes--yes. Go on."

"If I tell you what to do, you must promise to give me a fighting
chance."

"Yes, yes."

"Call up Aunt Josephine, then. Do just as I say."

Covering Clutching Hand, Kennedy called a number. "This is Mr.
Kennedy, Mrs. Dodge. Did Elaine receive a present of a wrist watch
from Mr. Bennett?"

"Yes," she replied, "for her birthday. It came this forenoon."

Kennedy hung up the receiver and faced Clutching Hand puzzled as
the latter said, "Call up Martin, the jeweler."

Again Kennedy obeyed.

"Has the watch purchased for Miss Elaine Dodge been delivered?" he
asked the clerk.

"No," came back the reply, "the watch Mr. Bennett bought is still
here being regulated."

Kennedy hung up the receiver. He was stunned.

"The watch will cause her death at three o'clock," said the
Clutching Hand. "Swear to leave here without discovering my
identity and I will tell you how. You can save her!"

A moment Kennedy thought. Here was a quandary.

"No," he shouted, seizing the telephone.

Before Kennedy could move, Clutching Hand had pulled the telephone
wires with almost superhuman strength from the junction box.

"In that watch," he hissed, "I have set a poisoned needle in a
spring that will be released and will plunge it into her arm at
exactly three o'clock. On the needle is ricinus!"

Craig advanced, furious. As he did so, Clutching Hand pointed
calmly to the clock. It was twenty minutes of three!

With a mental struggle, Kennedy controlled his loathing of the
creature before him.

"All right--but you'll hear from me--sooner than you suspect," he
shouted, starting for the door.

Then he came back and lifted his hat, hiding as much as possible
the selenium cell, letting the light fall on it.

"Only Elaine's life has saved you."

With a last threat he dashed out. He hailed a cab, returning from
some steamship wharves not far away.

"Quick!" he ordered, giving the Dodge address on Fifth Avenue.

Minute after minute the police and I waited. Was anything wrong?
Where was Craig?

Just then a tremor grew into a tinkle, then came the strong burr
of the bell. Kennedy needed us.

With a shout of encouragement to the men I dashed out and over to
the old house.

Meanwhile Clutching Hand himself had approached the table to
recover his weapon and had noticed the queer little selenium cell.
He picked it up and for the first time saw the wire leading out.

"The deuce!" he cried. "He's planned to get me anyhow!"

Clutching Hand rushed to the door--then stopped short. Outside he
could hear the police and myself. We had shot the lock on the
outside and were already inside.

Clutching Hand slammed shut his door and pulled down over it a
heavy wooden bar. A few steps took him to the window. There were
police in the back yard, too. He was surrounded.

But he did not hurry. He knew what to do with every second.

At the desk he paused and took out a piece of cardboard. Then with
a heavy black marking pencil, he calmly printed on it, while we
battered at the barricaded door, a few short feet away.

He laid the sign on the desk, then on another piece of cardboard,
drew crudely a hand with the index finger, pointing. This he
placed on a chair, indicating the desk.

Just as the swaying and bulging door gave way, Clutching Hand gave
the desk a pull. It opened up--his getaway.

He closed it with a sardonic smile in our direction, just before
the door crashed in.

We looked about. There was not a soul in the room, nothing but the
selenium cell, the chairs, the desk.

"Look!" I cried catching sight of the index finger, and going over
to the desk.

We rolled back the top. There on the flat top was a sign:

Dear Blockheads:

Kennedy and I couldn't wait.

Yours as ever,

Then came that mysterious sign of the Clutching Hand.

We hunted over the rooms, but could find nothing that showed a
clue. Where was Clutching Hand? Where was Kennedy?

In the next house Clutching Hand had literally come out of an
upright piano into the room corresponding to that he had left.
Hastily he threw off his handkerchief, slouch hat, old coat and
trousers. A neat striped pair of trousers replaced the old, frayed
and baggy pair. A new shirt, then a sporty vest and a frock coat
followed. As he put the finishing touches on, he looked for all
the world like a bewhiskered foreigner.

With a silk hat and stick, he surveyed himself, straightening his
tie. At the door of the new headquarters, a few seconds later, I
stood with the police.

"Not a sign of him anywhere," growled one of the officers.

Nor was there. Down the street we could see only a straight well-
dressed, distinguished looking man who had evidently walked down
to the docks to see a friend off, perhaps.

Elaine was sitting in the library reading when Aunt Josephine
turned to her.

"What time is it, dear?" she asked.

Elaine glanced at her pretty new trinket.

"Nearly three, Auntie--a couple of minutes," she said.

Just then there came the sound of feet running madly down the hall
way. They jumped up, startled.

Kennedy, his coat flying, and hat jammed over his eyes, had almost
bowled over poor Jennings in his mad race down the hall.

"Well," demanded Elaine haughtily, "what's--"

Before she knew what was going on, Craig hurried up to her and
literally ripped the watch off her wrist, breaking the beautiful
bracelet.

He held it up, gingerly. Elaine was speechless. Was this Kennedy?
Was he possessed by such an inordinate jealousy of Bennett?

As he held the watch up, the second hand ticked around and the
minute hand passed the meridian of the hour.

A viciously sharp little needle gleamed out--then sprang back into
the filigree work again.

"Well," she gasped again, "what's the occasion of THIS?"

Craig gazed at Elaine in silence.

Should he defend his rudeness, if she did not understand? She
stamped her foot, and repeated the question a third time.

"What do you mean, sir, by such conduct?"

Slowly he bowed.

"I just don't like the kind of birthday presents you receive," he
said, turning on his heel. "Good afternoon."




CHAPTER XII

THE BLOOD CRYSTALS


"On your right is the residence of Miss Elaine Dodge, the heiress,
who is pursuing the famous master criminal known as the Clutching
Hand."

The barker had been grandiloquently pointing out the residences of
noted New Yorkers as the big sightseeing car lumbered along
through the streets. The car was filled with people and he plied
his megaphone as though he were on intimate terms with all the
city's notables.

No one paid any attention to the unobtrusive Chinaman who sat
inconspicuously in the middle of the car. He was Mr. Long Sin, but
no one saw anything particularly mysterious about an oriental
visitor more or less viewing New York City.

Long was of the mandarin type, with drooping mustache, well
dressed in American clothes, and conforming to the new customs of
an occidentalized China.

Anyone, however, who had been watching Long Sin would have seen
that he showed much interest whenever any of the wealthy residents
of the city were mentioned. The name of Elaine Dodge seemed
particularly to strike him. He listened with subtle interest to
what the barker said and looked keenly at the Dodge house.

The sight-seeing car had passed the house, when he rose slowly and
motioned that he wanted to be let off. The car stopped, he
alighted and slowly rambled away, evidently marvelling greatly at
the strange customs of these uncouth westerners.

Elaine was going out, when she met Perry Bennett almost on the
steps of the house.

"I've brought you the watch," remarked Bennett; "thought I'd like
to give it to you myself."

He displayed the watch which he himself had bought a couple of
days before for her birthday. He had called for it himself at the
jeweller's where it had now been regulated.

"Oh, thank you," exclaimed Elaine. "Won't you come in?"

They had scarcely greeted each other, when Long Sin strolled
along. Neither of them, however, had time to notice the quiet
Chinaman who passed the house, looking at Elaine sharply out of
the corner of his eye. They entered and Long disappeared down the
street.

"Isn't it a beauty?" cried Elaine, holding it out from her, as
they entered the library and examining it with great appreciation.
"And, oh, do you know, the strangest thing happened yesterday?
Sometimes Mr. Kennedy acts too queerly for anything."

She related how Craig had burst in on her and Aunt Josephine and
had almost torn the other watch off her wrist.

"Another watch?" repeated Bennett, amazed. "It must have been a
mistake. Kennedy is crazy."

"I don't understand it, myself," murmured Elaine.

Long Sin had continued his placid way, revolving some dark and
devious plan beneath his impassive Oriental countenance. He was no
ordinary personage. In fact he was astute enough to have no
record. He left that to his tools.

This remarkable criminal had established himself in a hired
apartment downtown. It was furnished in rather elegant American
style, but he had added to it some most valuable Oriental curios
which gave it a fascinating appearance.

Long Sin, now in rich Oriental costume, was reclining on a divan
smoking a strange looking pipe and playing with two pet white
rats. Each white rat had a gold band around his leg, to which was
connected a gold chain about a foot in length, and the chains
ended in rings which were slipped over Long's little fingers.
Ordinarily, he carried the pets up the capacious sleeve of each
arm.

A servant, also in native costume, entered and bowed
deferentially.

"A Miss Mary Carson," she lisped in soft English.

"Let the lady enter," waved Long Sin, with a smile of subtle
satisfaction.

The girl bowed again and silently left the room, returning with a
handsome, very well dressed white woman.

It would be difficult to analyze just what the fascination was
that Long Sin exercised over Mary Carson. But as the servant left
the room, Mary bowed almost as deferentially as the little Chinese
girl. Long merely nodded in reply.

After a moment, he slowly rose and took from a drawer a newspaper
clipping. Without a word, he handed it to Mary. She looked at it
with interest, as one woman always does at the picture of another
pretty woman. It was a newspaper cut of Elaine, under which was:

ELAINE DODGE, THE HEIRESS, WHOSE BATTLE WITH THE CLUTCHING HAND IS
CREATING WORLD WIDE INTEREST.

"Now," he began, at last, breaking the silence, "I'll show you
just what I want you to do."

He went over to the wall and took down a curious long Chinese
knife from a scabbard which hung there conspicuously.

"See that?" he added, holding it up.

Before she could say a word, he had plunged the knife, apparently,
into his own breast.

"Oh!" cried Mary, startled.

She expected to see him fall. But nothing happened. Long Sin
laughed. It was an Oriental trick knife in which the blade
telescoped into the handle.

"Look at it," he added, handing it to her.

Long Sin took a bladder of water from a table nearby and concealed
it under his coat. "Now, you stab me," he directed.

Mary hesitated. But he repeated the command and she plunged the
knife gingerly at him. It telescoped. He made her try it over and
she stabbed more resolutely. The water from the bladder poured
out.

"Good!" cried Long Sin, much pleased. "Now," he added, seating
himself beside her, "I want you to lure Elaine here."

Mary looked at him inquiringly as he returned the knife to its
scabbard on the wall. "Remember where it is," he continued. "Now,
if you will come into the other room I will show you how to get
her."

I had been amusing myself by rigging up a contrivance by which I
could make it possible to see through or rather over, a door. The
idea had been suggested to me by the cystoscope which physicians
use in order to look down one's throat, and I had calculated that
by using three mirrors placed at proper angles, I could easily
reflect rays down to the level of my eye.

Kennedy, who had been busy in the other end of the laboratory,
happened to look over in my direction. "What's the big idea,
Walter?" he asked.

It was, I admit, a rather cumbersome and clumsy affair.

"Well, you see, Craig," I explained, "you put the top mirror
through the transom of a door and--"

Kennedy interrupted with a hearty burst of laughter. "But suppose
the door has no transom?" he asked, pointing to our own door.

I scratched my head, thoughtfully. I had assumed that the door
would have a transom. A moment later, Craig went to the cabinet
and drew out a tube about as big around as a putty blower and as
long.

"Now, here's what I call my detectascope," he remarked. "None of
your mirrors for me."

"I know," I said somewhat nettled, "but what can you see through
that putty blower? A key hole is just as good."

"Do you realize how little you can really see through a key hole?"
he replied confidently. "Try it over there."

I did and to tell the truth I could see merely a little part of
the hall. Then Kennedy inserted the detectascope.

"Look through that," he directed.

I put my eye to the eye-piece and gazed through the bulging lens
of the other end. I could see almost the whole hall.

"That," he explained, "is what is known as a fish-eye lens--a lens
that looks through an angle of some 180 degrees, almost twice that
of the widest angle lens I know of."

I said nothing, but tossed my own crude invention into the corner,
while Craig went back to work.

Elaine was playing with "Rusty" when Jennings brought in a card on
which was engraved the name, "Miss Mary Carson," and underneath,
in pencil, was written "Belgian Relief Committee."

"How interesting," commented Elaine, rising and accompanying
Jennings back into the drawing room. "I wonder what she wants.
Very pleased to meet you, Miss Carson," she greeted her visitor.

"You see, Miss Dodge," began Mary, "we're getting up this movement
to help the Belgians and we have splendid backing. Just let me
show you some of the names on our committee."

She handed Elaine a list which read:

BELGIAN RELIEF COMMITTEE

Mrs. Warburton Fish Mrs. Hamilton Beekman Mrs. C. August Iselm
Mrs. Belmont Rivington Mrs. Rupert Solvay.

"I've just been sent to see if I cannot persuade you to join the
committee and attend a meeting at Mrs. Rivington's," she went on.

"Why, er," considered Elaine thoughtfully, "er--yes. It must be
all right with such people in it."

"Can you go with me now?"

"Just as well as later," agreed Elaine.

They went out together, and, as they were leaving the house a man
who had been loitering outside looked at Elaine, then fixedly at
her companion.

No sooner had they gone than he sped off to a car waiting around
the corner. In the dark depths was a sinister figure, the master
criminal himself. The watcher had been an emissary of the
Clutching Hand.

"Chief," he whispered eagerly, "You know Adventuress Mary? Well,
she's got Elaine Dodge in tow!"

"The deuce!" cried Clutching Hand. "Then we must teach Mary
Carson, or whoever she is working for, a lesson. No one shall
interfere with our affairs. Follow them!"

Elaine and Mary had gone downtown, talking animatedly, and walked
down the avenue toward Mrs. Rivington's apartment.

Meanwhile, Long Sin, still in his Chinese costume, was explaining
to the servant just what he wished done, pointing out the dagger
on the wall and replacing the bladder under his jacket. A box of
opium was on the table, and he was giving most explicit
directions. It was into such a web that Elaine was being
unwittingly led by Mary.

Entering the hallway of the apartment, Mary rang the bell.

Long heard it. "Answer it," he directed the servant who hastened
to do so, while Long glided like a serpent into a back room.

The servant opened the door and Elaine and Mary entered. He closed
the door and almost before they knew locked it and was gone into
the back room.

Elaine gazed about in trepidation. But before she could say
anything, Mary, with a great show of surprise, exclaimed, "Why, I
must have made a mistake. This isn't Mrs. Rivington's apartment.
How stupid of me."

They looked at each other a moment. Then each laughed nervously,
as together they started to go out of the door. It was locked!

Quickly they ran to another door. It was locked, also.

Then they went to the windows. Behind the curtains they were
barred and looked out on a blank brick wall in a little court.

"Oh," cried Mary wringing her hands, stricken in mock panic, "oh,
I'm so frightened. This may be the den of Chinese white slavers!"

She had picked up some Chinese articles on a table, including the
box that Long had left there. It had a peculiar odor.

"Opium!" she whispered, showing it to Elaine.

The two looked at each other, Elaine genuinely worried now.

Just then, the Chinaman entered and stood a moment gazing at them.
They turned and Elaine recoiled from him. Long bowed.

"Oh sir," cried Mary, "We've made a mistake. Can't you tell us how
to get out?"

Long's only answer was to spread out his hands in polite
deprecation and shrug his suave shoulders.

"No speke Englis," he said, gliding out again from the room and
closing the door.

Elaine and Mary looked about in despair.

"What shall we do?" asked Elaine.

Mary said nothing, but with a hasty glance discovered on the wall
the knife which Long had already told her about. She took it from
its scabbard. As she did so the Chinaman returned with a tray on
which were queer drinks and glasses.

At the sight of Mary with the knife he scowled blackly, laid the
tray down, and took a few steps in her direction. She brandished
the knife threateningly, then, as if her nerve failed her, fainted
letting the knife fall carefully on the floor so that it struck on
the handle and not on the blade.

Long quickly caught her as she fainted and carried her out of the
room, banging shut the door. Elaine followed in a moment, loyally,
to protect her supposed friend, but found that the door had a snap
lock on the other side.

She looked about wildly and in a moment Long reappeared. As he
advanced slowly and insinuatingly, she drew back, pleading. But
her words fell on seemingly deaf ears.

She had picked up the knife which Mary had dropped and when at
last Long maneuvred to get her cornered and was about to seize
her, she nerved herself up and stabbed him resolutely.

Long staggered back--and fell.

As he did so, he pressed the bladder which he had already placed
under his coat. A dark red fluid, like blood, oozed out all over
him and ran in a pool on the floor.

Elaine, too horror-stricken at what had happened even to scream,
dropped the knife and bent over him. He did not move. She
staggered back and ran through the now open door. As she did so,
Long seemed suddenly to come to life. He raised himself and looked
after her, then with a subtle smile sank back into his former
assumed posture on the floor.

When Elaine reached the other room, she found Mary there with the
Chinese servant who was giving her a glass of water. At the sight
of her, the servant paused, then withdrew into another room
further back. Mary, now apparently recovering from her faintness,
smiled wanly at Elaine.

"It's all right," she murmured. "He is a Chinese prince who
thought we were callers."

At the reassuring nod of Mary toward the front room, Elaine was
overcome.

"I--I killed him!" she managed to gasp.

"What?" cried Mary, starting up and trembling violently. "You
killed him?"

"Yes," sobbed Elaine, "he came at me--I had the knife--I struck at
him--"

The two girls ran into the other room. There Mary looked at the
motionless body on the floor and recoiled, horrified.

Elaine noticing some spots on her hands and seeing that they were
stained by the blood of Long Sin, wiped the spots off on her
hankerchief, dropping it on the floor.

"Ugh!" exclaimed a guttural voice behind them.

It was the servant who had come in. Even his ordinarily impassive
Oriental face could not conceal the horror and fear at the sight
of his master lying on the floor in a pool of gore. Elaine was now
more frightened than ever, if that were possible.

"You--kill him--with knife?" insinuated the Chinese.

Elaine was dumb. The servant did not wait for an answer, but
hastily opened the hall door.

To Elaine it seemed that something must be done quickly. A moment
and all the house would be in uproar.

Instead, he placed his finger on his lips. "Quick--no word," he
said, leading the way to the hall door, "and--you must not leave
that--it will be a clue," he added, picking up the bloody
handkerchief and pressing it into Elaine's hand.

They quickly ran out into the hall.

"Go--quick!" he urged again, "and hide the handkerchief in the
bag. Let no one see it!"

He shut the door. As they hurried away, Elaine breathed a sigh of
relief.

"Why did he let us go, though?" she whispered, her head in a
whirl.

"I don't know," panted Mary, "but anyhow, thank heaven, we are out
of it. Come," she added, taking Elaine's arm, "not a soul has seen
us except the servant. Let us get away as quietly as we can."

They had reached the street. Afraid to run, they hurried as fast
as they could until they turned the first corner.

Elaine looked back. No one was pursuing.

"We must separate," added Mary. "Let us go different ways. I will
see you later. Perhaps they will think some enemy has murdered
him."

They pressed each other's hands and parted.

Meanwhile in the front room, Long Sin was on his feet again
brushing himself off and mopping up the blood.

"It worked very well, Sam," he said to the servant.

They were conversing eagerly and laughing and did not hear a noise
in the back room.

A sinister figure had made its way by means of a fire-escape to a
rear window that was not barred, and silently he had stolen in on
them.

Cat-like, he advanced, but instead of striking at them, he quietly
took a seat in a chair close behind them, a magazine revolver in
his hand.

They turned at a slight noise and saw him. Genuine fright was now
on their faces as they looked at him, open mouthed.

"What's all this?" he growled. "I am known as the Clutching Hand.
I allow no interferences with my affairs. Tell me what you are
doing here with Elaine Dodge."

Their beady almond eyes flashed fear. Clutching Hand moved
menacingly. There was nothing for the astute Long Sin to do but to
submit. Cowed by the well-known power of the master criminal, he
took Clutching Hand into his confidence.

With a low bow, Long Sin spread out his hands in surrender and
submission.

"I will tell you, honorable sir," he said at length.

"Go on!" growled the criminal.

Quickly Long rehearsed what had happened, from the moment the idea
of blackmail had entered his head.

"How about Mary Carson?" asked Clutching Hand. "I saw her here."

Long gave a glance of almost superstitious dread at the man, as if
he had an evil eye.

"She will be back--is here now," he added, opening the door at a
knock and admitting her.

Adventuress Mary had hurried back to see that all was right. This
time Mary was genuinely scared at the forbidding figure of which
she had heard.

"It is all right," pacified Long. "Henceforth we work with the
honorable Clutching Hand."

Clutching Hand continued to emphasize his demands on them,
punctuating his sentences by flourishes of the gun as he gave them
the signs and passwords which would enable them to work with his
own emissaries.

It was a strange initiation.

At home at last, Elaine sank down into a deep library chair and
stared straight ahead. She saw visions of arrest and trial, of the
terrible electric chair with herself in it, bound, and of the
giving of the fatal signal for turning on the current.

Were such things as these going to happen to her, without
Kennedy's help? Why had they quarreled? She buried her face in her
hands and wept.

Then she could stand it no longer. She had not taken off her
street clothes. She rose and almost fled from the house.

Kennedy and I were still in the laboratory when a knock sounded at
the door. I went to the door and opened it. There stood Elaine
Dodge.

It was a complete surprise to Craig. There was silence between
them for a moment and they merely looked at each other. Elaine was
pale and woebegone.

At last Kennedy took a quick step toward her and led her to a
chair. Still he felt a sort of constraint.

"What IS the matter?" he asked at length.

She hesitated, then suddenly burst out, "Craig--I--I am--a
murderess!"

I have never seen such a look on Craig's face. I know he wanted to
laugh and say, "YOU--a murderess?" yet he would not have offended
even her self accusation for the world. He managed to do the right
thing and say nothing.

Then she poured forth the story substantially as I have set it
down, but without the explanation which at that time was not known
to any of us.

"Oh," expostulated Craig, "there must be some mistake. It's
impossible--impossible."

"No," she asserted. "Look--here's my handkerchief all spotted with
blood."

She opened the bag and displayed the blood-spotted handkerchief.
He took it and examined it carefully.

"Elaine," he said earnestly, not at all displeased, I could see
that something had come up that might blot out the past
unfortunate misunderstanding, "there simply must be something
wrong here. Leave this handkerchief with me. I'll do my best."

There was still a little restraint between them. She was almost
ready to beg his pardon, for all the coolness there had been
between them, yet still hesitated.

"Thank you," she said simply as she left the laboratory.

Craig went to work abruptly without a word. On the laboratory
table he placed his splendid microscope and several cases of
slides as well as innumerable micro-photographs. He had been
working for some time when he looked up.

"Ever hear of Dr. Edward Reichert of the University of
Pennsylvania and his wonderful discoveries of how blood crystals
vary in different species?" he asked.

I had not, but did not admit it.

"Well," he went on, "there is a blood test so delicate that one
might almost say that he could identify a criminal by the finger
prints, so to speak, of his blood crystals. The hemoglobin or red
coloring matter forms crystals and the variations of these
crystals both in form and molecular construction are such that
they set apart every species of animal from every other, and even
the races of men--perhaps may even set apart individuals. Here,
Walter, we have sample of human blood crystals."

I looked through the microscope as he directed. There I could see
the crystals sharply defined.

"And here," he added, "are the crystals of the blood on Elaine's
handkerchief."

I looked again as he changed the slides. There was a marked
difference and I looked up at him quickly.

"It is dog's blood--not human blood," he said simply.

I looked again at the two sets of slides. There could be no doubt
that there was a plain difference.

"Wonderful!" I exclaimed.

"Yes--wonderful," he agreed, "but what's the game back of all
this--that's the main question now."

Long after Clutching Hand had left, Long Sin was giving
instructions to his servant and Adventuress Mary just how he had
had to change his plans as a result of the unexpected visit.

"Very well," nodded Mary as she left him, "I will do as you say--
trust me."

It was not much later, then, that Elaine received a second visit
from Mary.

"Show her in, Jennings," she said to the butler nervously.

Indeed, she felt that every eye must be upon her. Even Jennings
would know of her guilt soon.

Anxiously, therefore, Elaine looked at her visitor.

"Do you know why the servant allowed us to leave the apartment?"
whispered Mary with a glance about fearfully, as if the walls had
ears.

"No--why?" inquired Elaine anxiously.

"He's a tong man who has been chosen to do away with the Prince.
He followed me, and says you have done his work for him. If you
will give him ten thousand dollars for expenses, he will attend to
hiding the body."

Here at least was a way out.

"But do you think that is all right? Can he do it?" asked Elaine
eagerly.

"Do it? Why those tong men can do anything for money. Only one
must be careful not to offend them."

Mary was very convincing.

"Yes, I suppose you are right," agreed Elaine, finally. "I had
better do as you say. It is the safest way out of the trouble.
Yes, I'll do it. I'll stop at the bank now and get the money."

They rose and Mary preceded her, eager to get away from the house.
At the door, however, Elaine asked her to wait while she ran back
on some pretext. In the library she took off the receiver of the
telephone and quickly called a number.

Our telephone rang in the middle of our conversation on blood
crystals and Kennedy himself answered it.

It was Elaine asking Craig's advice.

"They have offered to hush the thing up for ten thousand dollars,"
she said, in a muffled voice.

She seemed bent on doing it and no amount of argument from him
could stop her. She simply refused to accept the evidence of the
blood crystals as better than what her own eyes told her she had
seen and done.

"Then wait for half an hour," he answered, without arguing
further. "You can do that without exciting suspicion. Go with her
to her hotel and hand her over the money."

"All right--I'll do it," she agreed.

"What is the hotel?"

Craig wrote on a slip of paper what she told him--"Room 509, Hotel
La Coste."

"Good--I'm glad you called me. Count on me," he finished as he
hung up the receiver.

Hastily he threw on his street coat. "Go into the back room and
get me that brace and bit, Walter," he asked.

I did so. When I returned, I saw that he had placed the
detectascope and some other stuff in a bag. He shoved in the brace
and bit also.

"Come on--hurry!" he urged.

We must have made record time in getting to the Coste. It was an
ornate place, where merely to breathe was expensive. We entered
and by some excuse Kennedy contrived to get past the vigilant
bellhops. We passed the telephone switchboard and entered the
elevator, getting off at the fifth floor.

With a hasty glance up and down the corridor, to make sure no one
was about, Kennedy came to room 509, then passed to the next, 511,
opening the door with a skeleton key. We entered and Craig locked
the door behind us. It was an ordinary hotel room, but well-
furnished. Fortunately it was unoccupied.

Quietly Craig went to the door which led to the next room. It was,
of course, locked also. He listened a moment carefully. Not a
sound. Quickly, with an exclamation of satisfaction, he opened
that door also and went into 509.

This room was much like that in which we had already been. He
opened the hall door.

"Watch here, Walter," he directed, "Let me know at the slightest
alarm."

Craig had already taken the brace and bit from the bag and started
to bore through the wall into room 511, selecting a spot behind a
picture of a Spanish dancer--a spot directly back of her snapping
black eyes. He finished quickly and inserted the detectascope so
that the lens fitted as an eye in the picture. The eye piece was
in Room 511. Then he started to brush up the pieces of plaster on
the floor.

"Craig," I whispered hastily as I heard an elevator door,
"someone's coming!"

He hurried to the door and looked. "There they are," he said, as
we saw Elaine and Mary rounding the corner of the hall.

Across the hall, although we did not know it at the time, in room
540, already, Long Sin had taken up his station, just to be handy.
There he had been with his servant, playing with his two trained
white rats.

Long placed them up his capacious sleeves and carefully opened the
door to look out. Unfortunately he, was just in time to see the
door of 509 open and disclose us.

His subtle glance detected our presence without our knowing it.

Hastily picking up the brace and bit and the rest of the debris,
and with a last look at the detectascope, which was hardly
noticeable, even if one already knew it was there, we hurried into
511 and shut the door.

Kennedy mounted a chair and applied his eye to the detectascope.
Just then Mary and Elaine entered the next room, Mary opening the
door with a regular key.

"Won't you step in?" she asked.

Elaine did so and Mary hesitated in the hall. Long Sin had slipped
out on noiseless feet and taken refuge behind some curtains. As he
saw her alone, he beckoned to Mary.

"There's a stranger in the next room," he whispered. "I don't like
him. Take the money and as quickly as possible get out and go to
my apartment."

At the news that there was a suspicious stranger about, Mary
showed great alarm. Everything was so rapid, now, that the
slightest hesitation meant disaster. Perhaps, by quickness, even a
suspicious stranger could be fooled, she reasoned. At any rate,
Long Sin was resourceful. She had better trust him.

Mary followed Elaine into the room, where she had seated herself
already, and locked the door.

"Have you the money there?" she asked.

"Yes," nodded Elaine, taking out the package of bills which she
had got from the bank during the half hour delay.

All this we could see by gazing alternately through the
detectascope.

Elaine handed Mary the money. Mary counted it slowly. At last she
looked up.

"It's all right," she said. "Now, I'll take this to that tong
leader--he's in a room only just across the hall."

She went out.

Kennedy at the detectascope was very excited as this went on. He
now jumped off the chair on which he had been standing and rushed
to the door to head her off.

To our surprise, in spite of the fact that we could turn the key
in the lock, it was impossible to open it!

It was only a moment that Craig paused at the door. The next
moment he burst into 509, followed closely by me.

With a scream, Elaine was on her feet in an instant.

There was no time for explanations, however.

He rushed to the door to go out, but it was locked--somehow, on
the outside. The skeleton key would not work, at any rate.

He shot the lock, and dashed out, calling back, "Walter, stay
there--with Elaine."

Mary had just succeeded in getting on the elevator as Kennedy
hurried down the hall. The door was closed and the car descended.
He rang the push bell furiously, but there was no answer.

Had he got so far in the chase, only to be outwitted?

He dashed back to the room, with us, and jerked down the telephone
receiver.

"Hello--hello--hello!" he called.

No answer.

There seemed to be no way to get a connection. What was the
matter?

He hurried down the hall again.

No sooner had Elaine and Mary actually gone into the room, than
Long and his servant stole out of 540, across the hall. Somewhere
they had obtained a strong but thin rope.

Quickly and silently Long tied the handle of the door 511 in which
we were to the handle of 540 which he was vacating. As both doors
opened inward and were opposite, they were virtually locked.

Then Long and his servant hurried down the hallway to the
elevator.

Down in the hotel lobby, with his followers, the Chinaman paused
before the telephone switchboard where two girls were at work.

"You may go," ordered Long, and, as his man left, he moved over
closer to the switchboard.

He was listening eagerly and also watching an indicator that told
the numbers of the rooms which called, as they flashed into view.

Just as a call from "509" flashed up, Long slipped the rings off
his little fingers and loosened the white rats on the telephone
switchboard itself.

With a shriek, the telephone system of the Coste went temporarily
out of business.

The operators fled to the nearest chairs, drawing their skirts
about them.

There was the greatest excitement among all the women in the
corridor. Such a display of hosiery was never contemplated by even
the most daring costumers.

Shouts from the bellboys who sought to catch the rats who
scampered hither and thither in frightened abandon mingled with
the shrieks of the ladies.

Kennedy had succeeded in finding the alcove of the floor clerk in
charge of the fifth floor. There on his desk was an instrument
having a stylus on the end of two arms, connected to a system of
magnets. It was a telautograph.

Unceremoniously, Craig pushed the clerk out of his seat and sat
down himself. It was a last chance, now that the telephone was out
of commission.

Downstairs, in the hotel office, where the excitement had not
spread to everyone, was the other end of the electric long
distance writer.

It started to write, as Kennedy wrote, upstairs:

"HOUSE DETECTIVE--QUICK--HOLD WOMAN WITH BLUE CHATELAINE BAG,
GETTING OUT OF ELEVATOR."

The clerks downstairs saw it and shouted above the din of the rat-
baiting.

"McCann--McCann!"

The clerk had torn off the message from the telautograph register,
and handed it to the house man who pushed his way to the desk.

Quickly the detective called to the bell-hops. Together they
hurried after the well-dressed woman who had just swept out of the
elevator. Mary had already passed through the excited lobby and
out, and was about to cross the street--safe.

McCann and the bell-hops were now in full cry after her. Flight
was useless. She took refuge in indignation and threats.

But McCann was obdurate. She passed quickly to tears and
pleadings. It had no effect. They insisted on leading her back.
The game was up.

Even an offer of money failed to move their adamantine hearts.
Nothing would do but that she must face her accusers.

In the meantime Long Sin had recovered his precious and useful
pets. Life in the Coste had assumed something of its normal
aspect, and Craig had succeeded in getting an elevator.

It was just as Mary was led in threatening and pleading by turns
that he stepped off in the lobby.

There was, however, still just enough excitement to cover a little
pantomime. Long Sin had been about to slip out of a side door,
thinking all was well, when he caught sight of Mary being led
back. She had also seen him, and began to struggle again.

Quickly he shook his head, indicating for her to stop. Then slowly
he secretly made the sign of the Clutching Hand at her. It meant
that she must not snitch.

She obeyed instantly, and he quietly disappeared.

"Here," cried Kennedy, "take her up in the elevator. I'll prove
the case."

With the house detective and Kennedy, Mary was hustled into the
elevator and whisked back as she had escaped.

In the meantime I had gathered up what stuff we had in the room we
had entered and had returned with Kennedy's bag.

"Wh--what's it all about?" inquired Elaine excitedly.

I tried to explain.

Just then, out in the hall we could hear loud voices, and that of
Mary above the rest. Kennedy, a man who looked like a detective,
and some bell-boys were leading her toward us.

"Now--not a word of who she is in the papers, McCann," Kennedy was
saying, evidently about Elaine. "You know it wouldn't sound well
for La Coste. As for that woman--well, I've got the money back.
You can take her off--make the charge."

As the house man left with Mary, I handed Craig his bag. We moved
toward the door, and as we stood there a moment with Elaine, he
quietly handed over to her the big roll of bills.

She took it, with surprise still written in her big blue eyes.
"Oh--thank you--I might have known it was only a blackmail
scheme," she cried eagerly.

Craig held out his hand and she took it quickly, gazing into his
eyes. Craig bowed politely, not quite knowing what to do under the
circumstances.

If he had been less of a scientist, he might have understood the
look on her face, but, with a nod to me, he turned, and went.

As she looked first at him, then at the paltry ten thousand in her
hand, Elaine stamped her little foot in vexation.

"I'm glad I DIDN'T say anything more," she cried. "No--no--he
shall beg my pardon first--there!"




CHAPTER XIII

THE DEVIL WORSHIPPERS


Elaine was seated in the drawing room with Aunt Josephine one
afternoon, when her lawyer, Perry Bennett, dropped in
unexpectedly.

He had hardly greeted them when the butler, Jennings, in his usual
impassive manner announced that Aunt Josephine was wanted on the
telephone.

No sooner were Elaine and Bennett alone, than Elaine, turning to
him, exclaimed impulsively, "I'm so glad you have come. I have
been longing to see you and to tell you about a strange dream I
have had."

"What was it?" he asked, with instant interest.

Leaning back in her chair and gazing before her tremulously,
Elaine continued, "Last night, I dreamed that father came to me
and told me that if I would give up Kennedy and put my trust in
you, I would find the Clutching Hand. I don't know what to think
of it."

Bennett, who had been listening intently, remained silent for a
few moments. Then, putting down his tea cup, he moved over nearer
to Elaine and bent over her.

"Elaine," he said in a low tone, his remarkable eyes looking
straight into her own, "you must know that I love you. Then give
me the right to protect you. It was your father's dearest wish, I
believe, that we should marry. Let me share your dangers and I
swear that sooner or later there will be an end to the Clutching
Hand. Give me your answer, Elaine," he urged, "and make me the
happiest man in all the world."

Elaine listened, and not unsympathetically, as Bennett continued
to plead for her answer.

"Wait a little while--until to-morrow," she replied finally, as if
overcome by the recollections of her weird dream and the
unexpected sequel of his proposal.

"Let it be as you wish, then," agreed Bennett quietly.

He took her hand and kissed it passionately.

An instant later Aunt Josephine returned. Elaine, unstrung by what
had happened, excused herself and went into the library.

She sank into one of the capacious arm chairs, and passing her
hand wearily over her throbbing forehead, closed her eyes in deep
thought. Involuntarily, her mind travelled back over the rapid
succession of events of the past few weeks and the part that she
had thought, at least, Kennedy had come to play in her life.

Then she thought of their recent misunderstanding. Might there not
be some simple explanation of it, after all, which she had missed?
What should she do?

She solved the problem by taking up the telephone and asking for
Kennedy's number.

I was chatting with Craig in his laboratory, and, at the same
time, was watching him in his experimental work. Just as a call
came on the telephone, he was pouring some nitro-hydrochloric acid
into a test tube to complete a reaction.

The telephone tinkled and he laid down the bottle of acid on his
desk, while he moved a few steps to answer the call.

Whoever the speaker was, Craig seemed deeply interested, and, not
knowing who was talking on the wire, I was eager to learn whether
it was anyone connected with the case of the Clutching Hand.

"Yes, this is Mr. Kennedy," I heard Craig say.

I moved over toward him and whispered eagerly, "Is there anything
new?"

A little impatient at being interrupted, Kennedy waved me off. It
occurred to me that he might need a pad and pencil to make a note
of some information and I reached over the desk for them.

As I did so my arm inadvertently struck the bottle of acid,
knocking it over on the top of the desk. Its contents streamed out
saturating the telephone wires before I could prevent it. In
trying to right the bottle my hand came in contact with the acid
which burned like liquid fire, and I cried out in pain.

Craig hastily laid down the receiver, seized me and rushed me to
the back of the laboratory where he drenched my hand with a
neutralizing liquid.

He bound up the wounds caused by the acid, which proved to be
slight, after all, and then returned to the telephone.

To his evident annoyance, he discovered that the acid had burned
through the wires and cut off all connection.

Though I did not know it, my hand was, in a sense at least, the
hand of fate.

At the other end of the line, Elaine was listening impatiently for
a response to her first eager words of inquiry. She was astounded
to find, at last, that Kennedy had apparently left the telephone
without any explanation or apology.

"Why--he rang off," she exclaimed angrily to herself, as she hung
up the receiver and left the room.

She rejoined her Aunt Josephine and Bennett who had been chatting
together in the drawing room, still wondering at the queer rebuff
she had, seemingly, experienced.

Bennett rose to go, and, as he parted from Elaine, found an
opportunity to whisper a few words reminding her of her promised
reply on the morrow.

Piqued, at Kennedy, she flashed Bennett a meaning glance which
gave him to understand that his suit was not hopeless.

In the center of a devious and winding way, quite unknown to all
except those who knew the innermost secrets of the Chinese quarter
and even unknown to the police, there was a dingy tenement house,
apparently inhabited by hardworking Chinamen, but in reality the
headquarters of the notorious devil worshippers, a sect of
Satanists, banned even in the Celestial Empire.

The followers of the cult comprised some of the most dangerous
Chinese criminals, thugs, and assassins, besides a number of
dangerous characters who belonged to various Chinese secret
societies. At the head of this formidable organization was Long
Sin, the high priest of the Devil God, and Long Sin had, as we
knew, already joined forces with the notorious Clutching Hand.

The room in which the uncanny rites of the devil worshippers were
conducted was a large apartment decorated in Chinese style, with
highly colored portraits of some of the devil deities and costly
silken hangings. Beside a large dais depended a huge Chinese gong.

On the dais itself stood, or rather sat, an ugly looking figure
covered with some sort of metallic plating. It almost seemed to be
the mummy of a Chinaman covered with gold leaf. It was thin and
shrunken, entirely nude.

Into this room came Long Sin attired in an elaborate silken robe.
He advanced and kowtowed before the dais with its strange figure,
and laid down an offering before it, consisting of punk sticks,
little dishes of Chinese cakes, rice, a jar of oil, and some
cooked chicken and pork. Then he bowed and kowtowed again.

This performance was witnessed by twenty or thirty Chinamen who
knelt in the rear of the room. As Long Sin finished his devotions
they filed past the dais, bowing and scraping with every sign of
abject reverence both for the devil deity and his high priest.

At the same time an aged Chinaman carrying a prayer wheel entered
the place and after prostrating himself devoutedly placed the
machine on a sort of low stool or tabourette and began turning it
slowly, muttering. Each revolution of this curious wheel was
supposed to offer a prayer to the god of the netherworld.

A few moments later, Long Sin, who had been bowing before the
metallic figure in deepest reverence, suddenly sprang to his feet.
His glazed eye and excited manner indicated that he had received a
message from the lips of the strange idol.

The worshippers who had prostrated themselves in awe at the sight
of their high priest in the unholy frenzy, all rose to their feet
and crowded forward. At the same time Long Sin advanced a step to
meet them, holding his arms outstretched as if to compel silence
while he delivered his message.

Long Sin struck several blows on the resounding gong and then
raised his voice in solemn tones.

"Ksing Chau, the Terrible, demands a consort. She is to be
foreign--fair of face and with golden hair."

Amazed at this unexpected message, the Chinamen prostrated
themselves again and their unhallowed devotions terminated a few
moments later amid suppressed excitement as they filed out.

At the same time, in a room of the adjoining house, the Clutching
Hand himself was busily engaged making the most elaborate
preparations for some nefarious scheme which his fertile mind had
evolved.

The room had been fitted up as a medium's seance parlor, with
black hangings on the walls, while at one side there was a square
cabinet of black cloth, with a guitar lying before it.

Two of the Clutching Hand's most trusted confederates and a hard-
faced woman of middle age, dressed in plain black, were putting
the finishing touches to this apartment, when their Chief entered.

Clutching Hand gazed about the room, now and then giving an order
or two to make more effective the setting for the purpose which he
had in mind.

Finally he nodded in approval and stepped over to the fire place
where logs were burning brightly in a grate.

Pressing a spring in the mantelpiece, the master criminal effected
an instant transformation. The logs in the fireplace, still
burning, disappeared immediately through the side of the brick
tiling and a metal sheet covered them. An aperture opened at the
back, as if by magic.

Through this opening Clutching Hand made his way quickly and
disappeared.

Emerging on the other side of the peculiar fireplace, Clutching
Hand pushed aside a curtain which barred the way and looked into
the Chinese temple, taking up a position behind the metallic
figure on the dais.

The Chinamen had by this time finished their devotions, if such
they might be called, and the last one was leaving, while Long Sin
stood alone on the dais.

The noise of the departing Satanists had scarcely died away when
Clutching Hand stepped out.

"Follow me," he ordered hoarsely seizing Long Sin by the arm and
leading him away.

They passed through the passageway of the fireplace and, having
entered the seance room, Clutching Hand began briefly explaining
the purpose of the preparations that had been made. Long Sin
wagged his head in voluble approval.

As Clutching Hand finished, the Chinaman turned to the hard-faced
woman who was to act the part of medium and added some directions
to those Clutching Hand had already given.

The medium nodded acquiescence, and a moment later, left the room
to carry out some ingenious plot framed by the master mind of the
criminal world.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Elaine was standing in the library gazing sadly at Kennedy's
portrait, thinking over recent events and above all the rebuff
over the telephone which she supposed she had received.

It all seemed so unreal to her. Surely, she felt in her heart, she
could not have been so mistaken in the man. Yet the facts seemed
to speak for themselves.

In spite of it all, she was almost about to kiss the portrait when
something seemed to stay her hands. Instead she laid the picture
down, with a sigh.

A moment later, Jennings entered with a card on a salver. Elaine
took it and saw with surprise the name of her caller:

MADAME SAVETSKY, MEDIUM

Beneath the engraved name were the words written in ink, "I have a
message from the spirit of your father."

"Yes, I will see her," cried Elaine eagerly, in response to the
butler's inquiry.

She followed Jennings into the adjoining room and there found
herself face to face with the hard-featured woman who had only a
few moments before left the Clutching Hand.

Elaine looked rather than spoke her inquiry.

"Your father, my dear," purred the medium with a great pretence of
suppressed excitement, "appeared to me, the other night, from the
spirit world. I was in a trance and he asked me to deliver a
message to you."

"What was the message?" asked Elaine breathlessly, now aroused to
intense interest.

"I must go into a trance again to get it," replied the insinuating
Savetsky, "and if you like I can try it at once, provided we can
be left alone long enough."

"Please--don't wait," urged Elaine, pulling the portieres of the
doors closer, as if that might insure privacy.

Seated in her chair, the medium muttered wildly for a few moments,
rolled her eyes and with some convulsive movements pretended to go
into a trance.

Savetsky seemed about to speak and Elaine, in the highest state of
nervous tension, listened, trying to make something of the
gibberish mutterings.

Suddenly the curtains were pushed aside and Aunt Josephine and
Bennett, who had just come in, entered.

"I can do nothing here," exclaimed Savetsky, starting up and
looking about severely. "You must come to my seance chamber where
we shall not be interrupted."

"I will," cried Elaine, vexed at the intrusion at that moment. "I
must have that message--I must."

"What's all this, Elaine?" demanded Aunt Josephine.

Hurriedly, Elaine poured forth to her aunt and Bennett the story
of the medium's visit and the promised message from her father in
the other world.

Aunt Josephine, who was not one easily to be imposed on, strongly
objected to Elaine's proposal to accompany Savetsky to the seance
chamber, but Elaine would not be denied. She pleaded with her
aunt, urging that she be allowed to go.

"It might be safe for Elaine to go," Bennett finally suggested to
Aunt Josephine, "if you and I accompanied her."

All this time the medium was listening closely to the
conversation. Elaine looked at her inquiringly. With a shrug, she
indicated that she had no objection to having Elaine escorted to
the parlor by her friends.

At last Aunt Josephine, influenced by Elaine's pleadings and
Bennett's suggestion, gave in and agreed to join in the visit.

A few moments later, in the Dodge car, Elaine, the medium, and her
two escorts started for the Chinese quarter.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

At the house, the medium opened the door with her key and ushered
in her three visitors.

Long Sin who had been watching for their arrival from the window
now hastily withdrew from the seance room and disappeared behind
the black curtains.

Entering the room the medium at once prepared for the seance by
pulling down the window shades. Then she seated herself in a chair
beside the cabinet, and appeared to fall off slowly into a trance.

Her strange proceedings were watched with the greatest curiosity
by Elaine as well as Aunt Josephine and Bennett, who had taken
seats placed at one side of the room.

The room itself was dimly lighted, and the curtains of the cabinet
seemed, in the obscurity, to sway back and forth as if stirred by
some ghostly breeze.

All of them were now quite on edge with excitement.

Suddenly an indistinct face was seen to be peering through the
black curtains, as it were.

The guitar, as if lifted by an invisible hand, left the cabinet,
floated about close to the ceiling, and returned again. It was
eerie.

At last a voice, deep, sepulchral, was heard in slow and solemn
tones.

"I am Eeko--the spirit of Taylor Dodge. I will give no message
until one named Josephine leaves the room."

No sooner had the words been uttered than the medium came writhing
out of her trance.

"What happened?" she asked, looking at Elaine.

Elaine reported the spirit's words.

"We can get nothing if your Aunt stays here," Savetsky added,
insisting that Aunt Josephine must go. "Your father cannot speak
while she is present."

Aunt Josephine, annoyed by what she had heard, indignantly refused
to go and was deaf to all Elaine's pleadings.

"I think it will be all right," finally acquiesced Bennett, seeing
how bent Elaine was on securing the message. "I'll stay and
protect her."

Aunt Josephine finally agreed. "Very well, then," she protested,
marching out of the room in a high state of indignation.

She had scarcely left the house, however, when she began to
suspect that all was not as it ought to be. In fact, the idea had
no sooner occurred to her than she decided to call on Kennedy and
she ordered the chauffeur to take her as quickly as possible to
the laboratory.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Kennedy had not been in the laboratory all the day, after my
experience with the acid and I was impatiently awaiting his
arrival. At last there came a knock at the door and I opened it
hurriedly. There was a messenger boy who handed me a note. I tore
it open. It was from Kennedy and read, "I shall probably be away
for two or three days. Call up Elaine and tell her to beware of a
certain Madame Savetsky."

I was still puzzling over the note and was just about to call up
Elaine when the speaking tube was blown and to my surprise I found
it was Aunt Josephine who had called.

"Where is Mr. Kennedy?" she asked, greatly agitated.

"He has gone away for a few days," I replied blankly. "Is there
anything I can do?"

She was very excited and hastily related what had happened at the
parlor of the medium.

"What was her name?" I asked anxiously.

"Madame Savetsky," she replied, to my surprise.

Astounded, I picked up Craig's note from the desk and handed it to
her without a word. She read it with breathless eagerness.

"Come back there with me, please," she begged, almost frantic with
fear now. "Something terrible may have happened."

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Aunt Josephine had hardly left Savetsky when the trance was
resumed and, in a few minutes, there came all sorts of
supernatural manifestations. The table beside Elaine began to turn
and articles on it dropped to the floor. Violent rappings followed
in various parts of the room. Both Elaine and Bennett who sat
together in silence were much impressed by the marvellous
phenomena--not being able to see, in the darkness, the concealed
wires that made them possible.

Suddenly, from the mysterious shadows of the cabinet, there
appeared the spirit of Long Sin, whose death Elaine still believed
she had caused when Adventuress Mary had lured her to the
apartment.

Elaine was trembling with fear at the apparition.

As before, a strange voice sounded in the depths of the cabinet
and again a message was heard, in low, solemn tones.

"I am Keka, and I have with me Long Sin. His blood cries for
vengeance."

Elaine was overcome with horror at the words.

From the cabinet ran a thick stream of red, like blood, from which
she recoiled, shuddering.

Then a dim, ghostly figure, apparently that of Long Sin, appeared.
The face was horribly distorted. It seemed to breathe the very
odor of the grave.

With arms outstretched, the figure glided from the cabinet and
approached Elaine. She shrank back further in fright, too
horrified even to scream.

At the same moment, the medium drew a vapor pistol from her dress,
and, as the ghost of Long Sin leaped at Elaine, Savetsky darted
forward and shot a stream of vapor full in Bennett's face.

Bennett dropped unconscious, the lights in the darkened room
flashed up, and several of the men of the Clutching Hand rushed
in.

Quickly the fireplace was turned on its cleverly constructed
hinges, revealing the hidden passage.

Before any effective resistance could be made, Elaine and Bennett
were hustled through the passage, securely bound, and placed on a
divan in a curtained chamber back of the altar of the devil
worshippers.

There they lay when Long Sin, now in his priestly robes, entered.
He looked at them a moment. Then he left the room with a sinister
laugh.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

It was at that moment that I, little dreaming of what had been
taking place, arrived with Aunt Josephine at the house of the
medium.

She answered my ring and admitted us. To our surprise, the seance
room was empty.

"Where is the young lady who was here?" I asked.

"Miss Dodge and the gentleman just left a few minutes ago," the
medium explained, as we looked about.

She seemed eager to satisfy us that Elaine was not there.
Apparently there was no excuse for disputing her word, but, as we
turned to leave, I happened to notice a torn handkerchief lying on
the floor near the fireplace. It flashed over me that perhaps it
might afford a clue.

As I passed it, I purposely dropped my soft hat over it and picked
up the hat, securing the handkerchief without attracting
Savetsky's attention.

Aunt Josephine was keen now for returning home to find out whether
Elaine was there or not. No sooner had she entered the car and
driven off, than I examined the handkerchief. It was torn, as if
it had been crushed in the hand during a struggle and wrenched
away. I looked closer. In the corner was the initial, "E."

That was enough. Without losing another precious moment I hurried
around to the nearest police station, where I happened to be
known, having had several assignments for the Star in that part of
the city, and gave an alarm.

The sergeant detailed several roundsmen, and a man in
plainclothes, and together we returned to the house, laying a
careful plan to surround it secretly, while the plainclothesman
and I obtained admittance.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Meanwhile, the Chinese devil worshippers had again gathered in
their cursed temple and Long Sin, in his priestly robe, appeared
on the dais.

The worshippers kowtowed reverently to him, while at the back
again stood the aged Chinaman patiently turning his prayer wheel.

Two braziers, or smoke pots, had been placed on the dais, one of
which Long Sin touched with a stick causing it to burst out into
dense fumes.

Standing before them, he chanted in nasal tones, "The white
consort of the great Ksing Chau has been found. It is his will
that she now be made his."

As he finished intoning the message, Long Sin signaled to two
young Chinamen to go into the anteroom. A moment later they
returned with Elaine.

Frightened though she was, Elaine made no attempt to struggle,
even when they had cut her bonds. She was busily engaged in
seeking some method of escape. Her eyes travelled ever the place
quickly. Apparently, there was no means of exit that was not
guarded. Long Sin saw her look, and smiled quietly.

They had carried her up to the dais, and now Long Sin faced her
and sternly ordered her to kowtow to the gruesome metallic figure.

She refused, but instantly the Chinamen seized her arm and twisted
it, until they had compelled her to fall to her knees.

Having forced her to kowtow, Long Sin turned to the assembled
devil dancers.

"With magic and rare drugs," he chanted, "she shall be made to
pass beyond and her body encased in precious gold shall be the
consort of Ksing Chau--forever and ever."

He made another sign and several pots and braziers were brought
out and placed on the dais beside Elaine. She was, by this time,
completely overcome by the horror of the situation. There was
apparently no escape.

With callous deviltry, the oriental satanists had made every
arrangement for embalming and preserving the body of Elaine. Pots
filled with sticky black material were slowly heated, amid weird
incantations, while other Chinamen laid out innumerable sheets of
gold leaf.

At last all seemed to be in readiness to proceed.

"Hold her," ordered Long Sin in guttural Chinese to the two
attendants, as he approached her.

Long Sin held in his hand a small, profusely decorated pot from
which smoke was escaping. As he approached he passed this
receptacle under her nose once, twice, three times.

Gradually Elaine fell into unconsciousness.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

While Elaine was facing death in the power of the devil
worshippers, I had reached the house of Savetsky next door with
the police, and the place had been quietly surrounded.

With the plainclothesman, a daring and intelligent fellow, I went
to the door and rang the bell.

"What can I do for you?" asked the medium, admitting us.

"My friend, here," I parleyed, "is in great business trouble. Can
your controlling spirit give him advice?"

We had managed to gain the interior of the seance room, and I
suppose there was nothing else for her to say, under the
circumstances, but, "Why--yes,--if the conditions are good, the
control can probably tell us just what he wants to know."

Savetsky set to work preparing the room for a seance. As she moved
over to the window to pull down the shades, she must have caught
sight of one or two of the policemen who had incautiously exposed
themselves from the hiding places in which I had disposed them
before we entered. At any rate, Savetsky did not lose a jot of her
remarkable composure.

"I'm sorry," she remarked merely, "but I'm afraid my control is
weak and cannot work today."

She took a step toward the door, motioning us to leave. Neither of
us paid any attention to that hint, but remained seated as we had
been before.

"Go!" she exclaimed at length, for the first time showing a trace
of nervousness.

Evidently her suspicions had been fully confirmed by our actions.
We tried to argue with her to gain time. But it was of no use.

Almost before I knew what she was doing, she made a dash for
something in the corner of the room. It was time for open action,
and I seized her quickly.

My detective was on his feet in an instant.

"I'll take care of her," he ground out, seizing her wrists in his
vice-like grasp. "You give the signal."

I rushed to the window, threw up the shade and opened the sash,
waving our preconcerted sign, turning again toward the room.

With a sudden accession of desperate strength, Savetsky broke away
from the plainclothesman and again attempted to get at something
concealed on the wall. I had turned just in time to fling myself
between her and whatever object she had in mind.

As the detective took her again and twisted her arm until she
cried out in pain, I hastily investigated the wall. She had
evidently been attempting to press a button that rang a concealed
bell.

What did it all mean?

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Elaine, now completely unconscious, was being held by the
Chinamen, while her arm was smeared with sticky black material
from the cauldron by Long Sin. As the high priest of Satan worked,
the devil worshippers kowtowed obediently.

Suddenly the aged Chinaman with the prayer wheel stopped his
incessant, impious turning, and rising, held up his hand as if to
command attention.

Amid a general exclamation of wonder, he walked to the dais and
mounted it, turning and facing the worshippers.

"This is nonsense," he cried in a loud tone. "Why should our great
Ksing Chau desire a white devil? I, a great grandfather, demand to
know."

The effect on the worshippers was electric. They paused in their
obeisance and stared at the speaker, then at their high priest.

Shaking with rage, Long Sin ordered the intruder off the dais. But
the aged devotee refused to go.

"Throw him out," he ordered his attendants.

For answer, as the two young Chinamen approached, the old Chinaman
threw them down to the floor with a quick jiu-jitsu movement. His
strength seemed miraculous for so aged a man.

Furious now beyond expression, Long Sin stepped forward himself.
He seized the beard and queue of the intruder. To his utter
amazement, they came off!

It was Kennedy!

With his automatic drawn, before the astounded devil dancers could
recover themselves, Craig stood at bay.

Long Sin leaped behind the big gong. As the Chinamen rushed
forward to seize him, Kennedy shot the leader of Long Sin's
attendants and struck down the other with a blow. The rush was
checked for the moment. But the odds were fearful.

Kennedy seized Elaine's yielding body and, pushing back the
curtains to the anteroom, succeeded in gaining it, and locking the
door into the main temple.

Bennett was still lying on the floor tightly bound. With a few
deft cuts by a Chinese knife which he had picked up, Kennedy
released him.

At the same time, Chinamen were trying to batter down the door,
Kennedy's last bulwark. It was swaying under their repeated blows.

Kennedy rushed to the door and fired through it at random to check
the attack for a few moments.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

While Kennedy was thus besieged by the devil worshippers in the
anteroom, several policemen and detectives gathered in the seance
room with us, next door, where Savetsky was held a defiant and
mute prisoner.

I had discovered the bell, and, taking that as a guide, I started
to trace the course of a wire which ran alongside the wall,
feeling certain that it would give me a clue to some adjoining
room to which Elaine might possibly have been taken.

To the fireplace I traced the bell, and, in pulling on the wire, I
luckily pressed a secret spring. To my amazement, the whole
fireplace swung out of sight and disclosed a secret passageway.

I looked through it.

It was almost at that precise instant that the door of the
anteroom burst open and the Chinamen swarmed in, urged on by the
insane exhortations of Long Sin.

To my utter amazement, I recognized Kennedy's voice.

In the first onslaught, Craig shot one Chinaman dead, then closed
with the others, slashing right and left with the Chinese knife he
had picked up.

Bennett came to his aid, but was immediately overcome by two
Chinamen, who evidently had been detailed for that purpose.

Meanwhile, Kennedy and the others were engaged in a terrible life
and death struggle. They fought all over the room, dismantling it,
and even tearing the hangings from the wall.

It was just as the Chinese was about to overpower him that I led
the police and detectives through the passageway of the fireplace.

It was a glorious fight that followed. Long Sin and his Chinamen
were no match for the police and were soon completely routed, the
police striking furiously in all directions and clearing the room.

Instantly, Kennedy thought of the fair object of all this melee.
He rushed to the divan on which he had placed Elaine.

She was slowly returning to consciousness.

As she opened her eyes, for an instant, she gazed at Craig, then
at Bennett. Still not comprehending just what had happened, she
gave her hand to Bennett. Bennett lifted her to her feet and
slowly assisted her as she tried to walk away.

Kennedy watched them, more stupefied than if he had been struck
over the head by Long Sin.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Police and detectives were now taking the captured Chinamen away,
as Bennett, his arm about Elaine, led her gently out.

A young detective had slipped the bracelets over Long Sin's wrist,
and I was standing beside him.

Kennedy, in a daze at the sight of Elaine and Bennett, passed us,
scarcely noticing who we were.

As Craig collected his scattered forces, Long Sin motioned to him,
as if he had a message to deliver.

Kennedy frowned suspiciously. He was about to turn away, when the
Chinaman began pleading earnestly for a chance to say a few words.

"Step aside for a moment, you fellows, won't you please," Craig
asked. "I will hear what you have to say, Long Sin."

Long Sin looked about craftily.

"What is it?" prompted Craig, seeing that at last they were all
alone.

Long Sin again looked around.

"Swear that I will go free and not suffer," Long Sin whispered,
"and I will betray the great Clutching Hand."

Kennedy studied the Chinaman keenly for a moment. Then, seemingly
satisfied with the scrutiny, he nodded slowly assent.

As Craig did so, I saw Long Sin lean over and whisper into
Kennedy's ear.

Craig started back in horror and surprise.




CHAPTER XIV

THE RECKONING


Pacing up and down his den in the heart of Chinatown, Long Sin was
thinking over his bargain with Kennedy to betray the infamous
Clutching Hand.

It was a small room in a small and unpretentious house, but it
adequately expressed the character of the subtle Oriental. The den
was lavishly furnished, while the guileful Long Sin himself wore a
richly figured lounging gown of the finest and costliest silk,
chosen for the express purpose of harmonizing with the luxurious
Far Eastern hangings and furniture so as to impress his followers
and those whom he might choose as visitors.

At length he seated himself at a teakwood table, still
deliberating over the promise he had been forced to make to
Kennedy. He sat for some moments, deeply absorbed in thought.

Suddenly an idea seemed to strike him. Lifting a little hammer, he
struck a Chinese gong on the table at his side. At the same time,
he leaned over and turned a knob at the side of a large roll-top
desk.

A few seconds later a sort of hatchway, covered by a rug on the
floor, in one corner of the room, was slowly lifted and Long Sin's
secretary, a sallow, cadaverous Chinaman, appeared from below. He
stepped noiselessly into the room and shuffled across to Long Sin.

Long Sin scowled, as though something had interfered with his own
plans, but tore open the envelope without a word, spreading out on
his lap the sheet of paper it contained.

The letter bore a typewritten message, all in capitals, which
read:

"BE AT HEADQUARTERS AT 12. DESTROY THIS IMMEDIATELY."

At the bottom of the note appeared the sinister signature of the
Clutching Hand.

As soon as he had finished reading the note, the Chinaman turned
to his obsequious secretary, who stood motionless, with folded
arms and head meekly bent.

"Very well," he said with an imperious wave of his hand. "You may
go."

Bowing low again, the secretary shuffled across and down again
through the hatchway, closing the door as he descended.

Long Sin read the note once more, while his inscrutable face
assumed an expression of malicious cunning. Then he glanced at his
heavy gold watch.

With an air of deliberation, he reached for a match and struck it.
He had just placed the paper in the flame when suddenly he seemed
to change his mind. He hastily blew out the match which had
destroyed only a corner of the paper, then folded the note
carefully and placed it in his pocket.

A few moments later, with a malignant chuckle, Long Sin rose
slowly and left the room.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Meanwhile, the master criminal was busily engaged in putting the
finishing touches to a final scheme of fiendish ingenuity for the
absolute destruction of Craig Kennedy.

He had been at work in a small room, fitted up as a sort of
laboratory, in the mysterious house which now served as his
headquarters.

On all sides were shelves filled with bottles of deadly liquids
and scientific apparatus for crime. Jars of picric acid, nitric
acid, carboys of other chemicals, packages labelled gunpowder, gun
cotton and nitroglycerine, as well as carefully stoppered bottles
of prussic acid, and the cyanides, arsenic and other poisons made
the place bear the look of a veritable devil's workshop.

Clutching Hand, at a bench in one corner, had just completed an
infernal machine of diabolical cunning, and was wrapping it
carefully in paper to make an innocent package.

He was interrupted by a knock at the door. Laying down the bomb he
went to answer the summons with a stealthy movement. There stood
Long Sin, who had disguised himself as a Chinese laundryman.

"On time--good!" growled Clutching Hand surlily as he closed the
door with equal care.

No time was wasted in useless formalities.

"This is a bomb," he went on, pointing to the package. "Carry it
carefully. On no account let it slip, or you are a dead man. It
must be in Kennedy's laboratory before night. Understand? Can you
arrange it?"

Long Sin looked the dangerous package over, then with an impassive
look, replied, "Have no fear. I can do it. It will be in the
laboratory within an hour. Trust me."

Long Sin nodded sagely, while Clutching Hand growled his approval
as he opened the door and let out the Chinaman. Long Sin departed
as stealthily as he had come, the frightful engine of destruction
hugged up carefully under his wide-sleeved coolie shirt.

For a moment Clutching Hand gave himself up to the exquisite
contemplation of what he had just done, then turned to clean up
his workshop.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

In Kennedy's laboratory I was watching Craig make some experiments
with a new X-ray apparatus which had just arrived, occasionally
looking through the fluoroscope when he was examining some
unusually interesting object.

We were oblivious to the passage of time, and only a call over our
speaking tube diverted our attention.

I opened the door and a few seconds later Long Sin himself
entered.

Kennedy looked up inquiringly as the Chinaman approached, holding
out a package which he carried.

"A bomb," he said, in the most matter of fact way. "I promised to
have it placed in your laboratory before night."

The placid air with which the grotesque looking Chinaman imparted
this astounding information was in itself preposterous. His
actions and words as he laid the package down gingerly on the
laboratory table indicated that he was telling the truth.

Kennedy and I stared at each other in blank amazement for a
moment. Then the humor of the thing struck us both and we laughed
outright.

Clutching Hand had told him to deliver it--and he had done so!

Hastily I filled a pail with water and brought it to Kennedy.

"If it is really a bomb," I remarked, "why not put the thing out
of commission?"

"No, no, Walter," he cried quickly, shaking his head. "If it's a
chemical bomb, the water might be just the thing to make the
chemicals run together and set it off. No, let us see what the new
X-ray machine can tell us, first."

He took the bomb and carefully placed it under the wonderful rays,
then with the fluoroscope over his eyes studied the shadow cast by
the rays on its sensitive screen. For several minutes he continued
safely studying it from every angle, until he thoroughly
understood it.

"It's a bomb, sure enough," Craig exclaimed, looking up from it at
last to me. "It's timed by an ingenious and noiseless little piece
of clockwork, in there, too. And it's powerful enough to blow us
all, the laboratory included, to kingdom come."

As he spoke, and before I could remonstrate with him, he took the
infernal machine and placed it on a table where he set to work on
the most delicate and dangerous piece of dissection of which I
have ever heard.

Carefully unwrapping the bomb and unscrewing one part while he
held another firm, he finally took out of it a bottle of liquid
and some powder. Then he placed a few grains of the powder on a
dish and dropped on it a drop or two of the liquid. There was a
bright flash, as the powder ignited instantly.

"Just what I expected," commented Kennedy with a nod, as he
examined the clever workmanship of the bomb.

One thing that interested him was that part of the contents had
been wrapped in paper to keep them in place. This paper he was now
carefully examining with a hand lens.

As nearly as I could make it out, the paper contained part of a
typewritten chemical formula, which read:

TINCTURE OF IODINE

THREE PARTS OF---

He looked up from his study of the microscope to Long Sin.

"Tell me just how it happened that you got this bomb," he asked.

Without hesitation, the Chinaman recited the circumstances,
beginning with the note by which he had been summoned.

"A note?" repeated Kennedy, eagerly. "Was it typewritten?"

Long Sin reached into his pocket and produced the note itself,
which he had not burned.

As Craig studied the typewritten message from the Clutching Hand I
could see that he was growing more and more excited.

"At last he has given us something typewritten," he exclaimed. "To
most people, I suppose, it seems that typewriting is the best way
to conceal identity. But there are a thousand and one ways of
identifying typewriting. Clutching Hand knew that. That was why he
was so careful to order this note destroyed. As for the bomb, he
figured that it would destroy itself."

He was placing one piece of typewriting after another under the
lens, scrutinizing each letter closely.

"Look, Walter," he remarked at length, taking a fine tipped pencil
and pointing at the distinguishing marks as he talked, "You will
notice that all the 'T's' in this note are battered and faint as
well as just a trifle out of alignment. Now I will place the paper
from the bomb under the lens and you will also see that the 'T's'
in the scrap of formula have exactly the same appearance. That
indicated, without the possibility of a doubt, taken in connection
with a score of other peculiarities in the letters which I could
pick out that both were written on the same typewriter. I have
selected the 'T' because it is the most marked."

I strained my eyes to look. Sure enough, Kennedy was right. There
was that unmistakable identity between the T's in the formula and
the note.

Kennedy had been gazing at the floor, his face puckered in thought
as I looked. Suddenly he slapped his hands together, as if he had
made a great discovery.

"I've struck it!" he exclaimed, jumping up. "I was wondering where
I had seen typewriting that reminds me of this. Walter, get on
your coat and hat. We are on the right trail at last."

With Long Sin we hurried out of the laboratory, leaving him at the
nearest taxicab stand, where we jumped into a waiting car.

"It is the clue of the battered 'T's,'" Craig muttered.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Aunt Josephine was in the library knitting when the butler,
Jennings, announced us. We were admitted at once, for Aunt
Josephine had never quite understood what was the trouble between
Elaine and Craig, and had a high regard for him.

"Where is--Miss Dodge?" inquired Kennedy, with suppressed
excitement as we entered.

"I think she's out shopping and I don't know just when she will be
back," answered Aunt Josephine, with some surprise. "Why? Is it
anything important--any news?"

"Very important," returned Kennedy excitedly. "I think I have the
best clue yet. Only--it will be necessary to look through some of
the household correspondence immediately to see whether there are
certain letters. I wouldn't be surprised if she had some--perhaps
not very personal--but I MUST see them."

Aunt Josephine seemed nonplussed at first. I thought she was going
to refuse to allow Craig to proceed. But finally she assented.

Kennedy lost no time. He went to a desk where Elaine generally
sat, and quickly took out several typewritten letters. He examined
them closely, rejecting one after another, until finally he came
to one that seemed to interest him.

He separated it from the rest and fell to studying it, comparing
it with the paper from the bomb and the note which Long Sin had
received from the Clutching Hand. Then he folded the letter so
that both the signature and the address could not be read by us.

A portion of the letter, I recall, read something like this:

"This is his contention: whereas TRUTH is the only goal and MATTER
is non-existent--

"Look at this, Walter," remarked Craig, with difficulty
restraining himself, "What do you make of it?"

A glance at the typewriting was sufficient to show me that Kennedy
had indeed made an important discovery. The writing of the letter
which he had just found in Elaine's desk corresponded in every
respect with that in the Clutching Hand note and that on the bomb
formula. In each instance there were the same faintness, the same
crooked alignment, the same battered appearance of all the letter
T's.

We stared at each other almost too dazed to speak.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

At that moment we were startled by the sudden appearance of Elaine
herself, who had come in unexpectedly from her shopping
expedition.

She entered the room carrying in her arms a huge bunch of roses
which she had evidently just received. Her face was half buried in
the fragrant blossoms, but was fairer than even they in their
selected elegance.

The moment she saw Craig, however, she stopped short with a look
of great surprise. Kennedy, on his part, who was seated at the
desk still tracing out the similarities of the letters, stood up,
half hesitating what to say. He bowed and she returned his
salutation with a very cool nod.

Her keen eye had not missed the fact that several of her letters
lay scattered over the top of the desk.

"What are you doing with my letters, Mr. Kennedy?" she asked, in
an astonished tone, evidently resenting the unceremoniousness with
which he had apparently been overhauling her correspondence.

As guardedly as possible, Kennedy met her inquiry, which I could
not myself blame her for making.

"I beg pardon, Miss Dodge," he said, "but a matter has just come
up which necessitated merely a cursory examination of some purely
formal letters which might have an important bearing on the
discovery of the Clutching Hand. Your Aunt had no idea where you
were, nor of when you might return, and the absolute necessity for
haste in such an important matter is my only excuse for examining
a few minor letters without first obtaining your permission."

She said nothing. At another time, such an explanation would have
been instantly accepted. Now, however, it was different.

Kennedy read the look on her face, and an instant later turned to
Aunt Josephine and myself.

"I would very much appreciate a chance to say a few words to Miss
Dodge alone," he intimated. "I have had no such opportunity for
some time. If you would be so kind as to leave us in the library--
for a few minutes--"

He did not finish the sentence. Aunt Josephine had already begun
to withdraw and I followed.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

For a moment or two, Craig and Elaine looked at each other,
neither saying a word, each wondering just what was in the other's
mind. Kennedy was wondering if there was any X-ray that might read
a woman's heart, as he was accustomed to read others of nature's
secrets.

He cleared his throat, the obvious manner of covering up his
emotion.

"Elaine," he said at length, dropping the recent return to "Miss
Dodge," for the moment, "Elaine, is there any truth in this
morning's newspaper report of--of you?"

She had dropped her eyes. But he persisted, taking a newspaper
clipping from his pocket and handing it to her.

Her hand trembled as she glanced over the item:

SOCIETY NOTES

Dame Rumor is connecting the name of Miss Elaine Dodge, the
heiress, with that of Perry Bennett, the famous young lawyer. The
announcement of an engagement between them at any time would not
surprise--

Elaine read no further. She handed back the clipping to Kennedy.
As her eyes met his, she noticed his expression of deep concern,
and hesitated with the reply she had evidently been just about to
make.

Still, as she lowered her head, it seemed to give silent
confirmation to the truth of the newspaper report.

Kennedy said nothing. But his eyes continued to study her face,
even when it was averted.

He suppressed his feelings with a great effort, then, without a
word, bowed and left the room.

"Walter," he exclaimed as he rejoined us in the drawing room,
where I was chatting with Aunt Josephine, "we must be off again.
The trail follows still further."

I rose and much to the increased mystification of Aunt Josephine,
left the house.

 An hour or so later, Elaine, whose mind was now in a whirl from
what had happened, decided to call on Perry Bennett.

Two or three clerks were in the outer office when she arrived, but
the office boy, laying down a dime novel, rose to meet her and
informed her that Mr. Bennett was alone.

As Elaine entered his private office, Bennett rose to greet her
effusively and they exchanged a few words.

"I mustn't forget to thank you for those lovely roses you sent
me," she exclaimed at length. "They were beautiful and I
appreciated them ever so much."

Bennett acknowledged her thanks with a smile, she sat down
familiarly on his desk, and they plunged into a vein of social
gossip.

A moment later, Bennett led the conversation around until he found
an opportunity to make a tactful allusion to the report of their
engagement in the morning papers.

He had leaned over and now attempted to take her hand. She
withdrew it, however. There was something about his touch which,
try as she might, she could not like. Was it mere prejudice, or
was it her keen woman's intuition?

Bennett looked at her a moment, suppressing a momentary flash of
anger that had reddened his face, and controlled himself as if by
a superhuman effort.

"I believe you really love that man Kennedy," he exclaimed, in a
tone that was almost a hiss. "But I tell you, Elaine, he is all
bluff. Why, he has been after that Clutching Hand now for three
months--and what has he accomplished? Nothing!"

He paused. Through Elaine's mind there flashed the contrast with
Kennedy's even temper and deferential manner. In spite of their
quarrel and the coolness, she found herself resenting the remark.
Still she said nothing, though her expressive face showed much.

Bennett, by another effort, seemed to grip his temper again. He
paced up and down the room. Then he changed the subject abruptly,
and the conversation was resumed with some constraint.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

While Elaine and Bennett were talking, Kennedy and I had entered
the office.

Craig stopped the boy who was about to announce us and asked for
Bennett's secretary instead, much to my astonishment.

The boy merely indicated the door of one of the other private
offices, and we entered.

We found the secretary, hard at work at the typewriter, copying a
legal document. Without a word, Kennedy at once locked the door.

The secretary rose in surprise, but Craig paid no attention to
him. Instead he calmly walked over to the machine and began to
examine it.

"Might I ask--" began the secretary.

"You keep quiet," ordered Kennedy, with a nod to me to watch the
fellow. "You are under arrest--and the less you say, the better
for you."

I shall never forget the look that crossed the secretary's face.
Was it the surprise of an innocent man?

Taking the man's place at the machine, Kennedy removed the legal
paper that was in it and put in a new sheet. Then he tapped out,
as we watched:

BE AT HEADQUARTERS AT 12. DESTROY THIS IMMEDIATELY

TINCTURE OF IODINE

THREE PARTS OF---

This is his contention:--whereas TRUTH is the only goal and MATTER
is non-existent--

T T T T

"Look, Walter," he exclaimed as he drew out the paper from the
machine.

I bent over and together we compared the T's with those in the
Clutching Hand letter, the paper from the bomb and the letter
which Craig had taken from Elaine's desk.

As Craig pointed out the resemblances with a pencil, my amazement
gradually changed into comprehension and comprehension into
conviction. The meaning of it all began to dawn on me.

The writing was identical. There were no differences!

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

While we were locked in the secretary's office, Bennett and Elaine
were continuing their chat on various social topics. Suddenly,
however, with a glance at the clock, Bennett told Elaine that he
had an important letter to dictate, and that it must go off at
once.

She said that she would excuse him a few minutes and he pressed a
button to call his secretary.

Of course the secretary did not appear. Bennett left his office,
with some annoyance, and went into the adjoining room the door to
which Kennedy had not locked.

He hesitated a moment, then opened the door quietly. To his
astonishment, he saw Kennedy, the secretary, and myself apparently
making a close examination of the typewriter.

Gliding rather than walking back into his own office, he closed
the door and locked it. Almost instantly, fear and fury at the
presence of his hated rival, Kennedy, turned Bennett, as it were,
from the Jekyll of a polished lawyer and lover of Elaine into an
insanely jealous and revengeful Mr. Hyde. The strain was more than
his warped mind could bear.

With a look of intense horror and loathing, Elaine watched him
slowly change from the composed, calm, intellectual Bennett she
knew and respected into a repulsive, mad figure of a man.

His stature even seemed to be altered. He seemed to shrivel up and
become deformed. His face was terribly distorted.

And his long, sinewy hand slowly twisted and bent until he became
the personal embodiment of the Clutching Hand.

As Elaine, transfixed with terror, watched Bennett's astounding
metamorphosis, he ran to the door leading to the outer office and
hastily locked that, also.

Then, with his eyes gleaming with rage and his hands working in
murderous frenzy, he crouched, nearer and nearer, towards Elaine.

She shrank back, screaming again and again in terror.

He WAS the Clutching Hand!

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

In spite of closed doors, we could now plainly hear Elaine's
shrieks. Craig, the secretary and myself made a rush for the door
to Bennett's private office. Finding it locked, we began to batter
it.

By this time, however, Bennett had hurled himself upon Elaine and
was slowly choking her.

Kennedy quickly found that it was impossible to batter down the
door in time by any ordinary means. Quickly he seized the
typewriter and hurled it through the panels. Then he thrust his
hand through the opening and turned the catch.

As we flung ourselves into the room, Bennett rushed into a closet
in a corner, slamming the door behind him. It was composed of
sheet iron and effectually prevented anyone from breaking through.
Kennedy and I tried vainly, however, to pry it open.

While we were thus endeavoring to force an entrance, Bennett, in a
sort of closet, had put on the coat, hat and mask which he
invariably wore in the character of the Clutching Hand. Then he
cautiously opened a secret door in the back of the closet and
slowly made an exit.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

Meanwhile, the secretary had been doing his best to revive Elaine,
who was lying in a chair, hysterical and half unconscious from the
terrible shock she had experienced.

Intent on discovering Bennett's whereabouts, Kennedy and I
examined the wall of the office, thinking there might possibly be
some button or secret spring which would open the closet door.

While we were doing so, the door of a large safe in the
secretary's office gradually opened and the Clutching Hand emerged
from it, stepping carefully towards the door leading to the outer
office, intent on escaping in that direction.

At that moment, I caught sight of him, and leaping into the
secretary's office, I drew my revolver and ordered him to throw up
his hands. He obeyed. Holding up both hands, he slowly drew near
the door to his private office.

Suddenly he dropped one hand and pressed a hidden spring in the
wall.

Instantly a heavy iron door shot out and closed over the wooden
door. Entrance to the private office was absolutely cut off.

With an angry snarl, the Clutching Hand leaped at me.

As he did so, I fired twice.

He staggered back.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

The shots were heard by Kennedy and Elaine, as well as the
secretary, and at the same instant they discovered the iron door
which barred the entrance to the secretary's office.

Rushing into the outer office, they found the clerks excitedly
attempting to open the door of the secretary's office which was
locked. Kennedy drew a revolver and shot through the lock,
bursting open the door.

They rushed into the room.

Clutching Hand was apparently seated in a chair at a desk, his
face buried in his arms, while I was apparently disappearing
through the door.

Kennedy and the clerks pounced upon the figure in the chair and
tore off his mask. To their astonishment, they discovered that it
was myself!

My shots had missed and Clutching Hand had leaped on me with
maddened fury.

Dressed in my coat and hat, which he had deftly removed after
overpowering me and substituting his own clothes, Clutching Hand
had by this time climbed through the window of the outer office
and was making his way down the fire escape to the street. He
reached the foot of the iron steps leaped off and ran quickly
away.

Shouting a few directions to the secretary, the clerks and Elaine,
Kennedy climbed through the window and darted down the fire escape
in swift pursuit.

The Clutching Hand, however, managed to elude capture again.
Turning the street corner he leaped into a taxi which happened to
be standing there, and, hastily giving the driver directions, was
driven rapidly away. By the time Kennedy reached the street
Clutching Hand had disappeared.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

While these exciting events were occurring in Bennett's office
some queer doings were in progress in the heart of Chinatown.

Deep underground, in one of the catacombs known only to the
innermost members of the Chinese secret societies, was Long Sin's
servant, Tong Wah, popularly known as "the hider," engaged in some
mysterious work.

A sinister-looking Chinaman, dressed in coolie costume, he was
standing at a table in a dim and musty, high-ceilinged chamber,
faced with stone and brick. Before him were several odd shaped
Chinese vials, and from these he was carefully measuring certain
proportions, as if concocting some powerful potion.

He stepped back and looked around suspiciously as he suddenly
heard footsteps above. The next moment Long Sin, who had entered
through a trap door, climbed down a long ladder and walked into
the room.

Approaching Tong Wah, he asked: "When will the death-drink be
ready?"

"It is now prepared," was the reply.

Long Sin took the bowl in which the liquor had been mixed, and,
having examined it, he gave a nod and a grunt of satisfaction.
Then he mounted the ladder again and disappeared.

As soon as he had gone Tong Wah, picking up several of the vials,
went out through an iron door at the end of the room.

A few minutes later the Clutching Hand drove up to Long Sin's
house in the taxicab and, after paying the chauffeur, went to the
door and knocked sharply.

In response to his knocking Long Sin appeared on the threshold and
motioned to Bennett to come in, evidently astonished to see him.

As he entered, Bennett made a secret sign and said: "I am the
Clutching Hand. Kennedy is close on my trail, and I have come to
be hidden."

In a tone which betrayed alarm and fear the Chinaman intimated
that he had no place in which Bennett could be concealed with any
degree of safety.

For a moment Bennett glared savagely at Long Sin.

"I possess hidden plunder worth seven million dollars," he pleaded
quickly, "and if by your aid I can make a getaway, a seventh is
yours."

The Chinaman's cupidity was clearly excited by Bennett's offer,
while the bare mention of the amount at stake was sufficient to
overcome all his scruples.

After exchanging a few words he finally agreed to all the
Clutching Hand said. Opening a trap door in the floor of the room
in which they were standing, he led Bennett down a step-ladder
into the subterranean chamber in which Tong Wah had so recently
been preparing his mysterious potion. As Bennett sank into a chair
and passed his hands over his brow in utter weariness, Long Sin
poured into a cup some of the liquor of death which Tong Wah had
mixed. He handed it to Bennett, who drank it eagerly.

"How do you propose to help me to escape?" asked Bennett huskily.

Without a word Long Sin went to the wall, and, grasping one of the
stones, pressed it back, opening a large receptacle, in which
there were two glass coffins apparently containing two dead
Chinamen. Pulling out the coffins, he pushed them before Bennett,
who rose to his feet and gazed upon them with wonder.

Long Sin broke the silence: "These men," he said, "are not dead;
but they have been in this condition for many months. It is what
is called in your language suspended animation."

"Is that what you intend to do with me?" asked Bennett, shrinking
back in terror.

The Chinaman nodded in affirmation as he pushed back the coffins.

Overcome by the horror of the idea Bennett, with a groan, sank
back into the chair, shaking his head as if to indicate that the
plan was far too terrible to carry out.

With a sinister smile and a shrug of his shoulders Long Sin
pointed to the cup from which Bennett had drunk.

"But, dear master," he remarked suavely, "you have already drunk a
full dose of the potion which causes insensibility, and it is
overcoming you. Even now," he added, "you are too weak to rise."

Bennett made frantic efforts to move from his seat, but the potion
was already taking effect, and through sheer weakness he found he
was unable to get on his feet in spite of all his struggles.

With a malicious chuckle Long Sin moved closer to his victim and
spoke again.

"Divulge where your seven million dollars are hidden," he
suggested craftily, "and I will give you an antidote."

By this time Bennett, who was becoming more rigid each moment, was
unable to speak, but by a movement of his head and an expression
in his eyes he indicated that he was ready to agree to the
Chinaman's proposal.

"Where have you hidden the seven million dollars?" repeated Long
Sin.

Slowly, and after a desperate struggle, Bennett managed to raise
one hand and pointed to his breast pocket. The Chinaman instantly
thrust in his hand and drew out a map.

For some moments Long Sin examined the map intently, and, with a
grin of satisfaction, he placed it in his own pocket. Then he
mixed what he declared was a sure antidote, and, pouring some of
the liquor into a cup, he held it to Bennett's lips.

As Bennett opened his mouth to drink it, Long Sin with a laugh
slowly pulled the cup away and poured its contents on the floor.

Bennett's body had now become still more rigid. Every sign of
intelligence had left his face, and although his eyes did not
close, a blank stare came over his countenance, indicating plainly
that the drug had destroyed all consciousness.

     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .

By this time, I was slowly recovering my senses in the secretary's
office, where Bennett had left me in the disguise of the Clutching
Hand. Elaine, the secretary, and the clerks were gathered round
me, doing all they could to revive me.

Meanwhile, Kennedy had enlisted the aid of two detectives and was
scouring the city for a trace of Bennett or the taxicab in which
he had fled.

Somehow, Kennedy suspected, instinctively, that Long Sin might
give a clue to Bennett's whereabouts, and a few moments later, we
were all on our way in a car to Long Sin's house.

Though we did not know it, Long Sin, at the moment when Kennedy
knocked at his door, was feeling in his inside pocket to see that
the map he had taken from Bennett was perfectly safe. Finding that
he had it, he smiled with his peculiar oriental guile. Then he
opened the door, and stood for a moment, silent.

"Where is Bennett?" demanded Kennedy.

Long Sin eyed us all, then with a placid smile, said, "Follow me.
I will show you."

He opened a trap door, and we climbed down after Craig, entering a
subterranean chamber, led by Long Sin.

There was Bennett seated rigidly in the chair beside the table
from which the vials and cups, about which we then knew nothing,
had been removed.

"How did it happen?" asked Kennedy.

"He came here," replied Long Sin, with a wave of his hand, "and
before I could stop him he did away with himself."

In dumb show, the Chinaman indicated that Bennett had taken
poison.

"Well, we've got him," mused Kennedy, shaking his head sadly,
adding, after a pause, "but he is dead."

Elaine, who had followed us down, covered her eyes with her hands,
and was sobbing convulsively. I thought she would faint, but
Kennedy led her gently away into an upper room.

As he placed her in an easy chair, he bent over her, soothingly.

"Did you--did you--really--love him?" he asked in a low tone,
nodding in the direction from which he had led her.

Still shuddering, and with an eager look at Kennedy, Elaine shook
her beautiful head.

Then, slowly rising to her feet, she looked at Craig appealingly.
For a moment he looked down into her two great lakes of eyes.

"Forgive me," murmured Elaine, holding out her hand. Then she
added in a voice tense with emotion, "Thank you for saving me."

Kennedy took her hand. For a moment he held it. Then he drew her
towards him, unresisting.

THE END




*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, THE EXPLOITS OF ELAINE ***

This file should be named eelai10.txt or eelai10.zip
Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks get a new NUMBER, eelai11.txt
VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, eelai10a.txt

Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US
unless a copyright notice is included.  Thus, we usually do not
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.

We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance
of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.
Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections,
even years after the official publication date.

Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til
midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at
Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month.  A
preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
and editing by those who wish to do so.

Most people start at our Web sites at:
http://gutenberg.net or
http://promo.net/pg

These Web sites include award-winning information about Project
Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new
eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).


Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement
can get to them as follows, and just download by date.  This is
also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the
indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an
announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter.

http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext04 or
ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext04

Or /etext03, 02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90

Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want,
as it appears in our Newsletters.


Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)

We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work.  The
time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc.   Our
projected audience is one hundred million readers.  If the value
per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text
files per month:  1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+
We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002
If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total
will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end.

The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks!
This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users.

Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated):

eBooks Year Month

    1  1971 July
   10  1991 January
  100  1994 January
 1000  1997 August
 1500  1998 October
 2000  1999 December
 2500  2000 December
 3000  2001 November
 4000  2001 October/November
 6000  2002 December*
 9000  2003 November*
10000  2004 January*


The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created
to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.

We need your donations more than ever!

As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people
and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut,
Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois,
Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts,
Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New
Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio,
Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South
Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West
Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming.

We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones
that have responded.

As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list
will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states.
Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state.

In answer to various questions we have received on this:

We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally
request donations in all 50 states.  If your state is not listed and
you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have,
just ask.

While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are
not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting
donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to
donate.

International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about
how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made
deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are
ways.

Donations by check or money order may be sent to:

Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
PMB 113
1739 University Ave.
Oxford, MS 38655-4109

Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment
method other than by check or money order.

The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by
the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN
[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154.  Donations are
tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law.  As fund-raising
requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be
made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states.

We need your donations more than ever!

You can get up to date donation information online at:

http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html


***

If you can't reach Project Gutenberg,
you can always email directly to:

Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>

Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.

We would prefer to send you information by email.


**The Legal Small Print**


(Three Pages)

***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START***
Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from
someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to.

*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK
By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by
sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical
medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.

ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS
This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks,
is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project").
Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
distribute it in the United States without permission and
without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook
under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.

Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market
any commercial products without permission.

To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable
efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any
medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.

LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may
receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims
all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.

If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of
receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
time to the person you received it from. If you received it
on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
receive it electronically.

THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
PARTICULAR PURPOSE.

Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
may have other legal rights.

INDEMNITY
You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation,
and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated
with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including
legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
following that you do or cause:  [1] distribution of this eBook,
[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook,
or [3] any Defect.

DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by
disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
or:

[1]  Only give exact copies of it.  Among other things, this
     requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
     eBook or this "small print!" statement.  You may however,
     if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable
     binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
     including any form resulting from conversion by word
     processing or hypertext software, but only so long as
     *EITHER*:

     [*]  The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
          does *not* contain characters other than those
          intended by the author of the work, although tilde
          (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
          be used to convey punctuation intended by the
          author, and additional characters may be used to
          indicate hypertext links; OR

     [*]  The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at
          no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
          form by the program that displays the eBook (as is
          the case, for instance, with most word processors);
          OR

     [*]  You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
          no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
          eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
          or other equivalent proprietary form).

[2]  Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this
     "Small Print!" statement.

[3]  Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the
     gross profits you derive calculated using the method you
     already use to calculate your applicable taxes.  If you
     don't derive profits, no royalty is due.  Royalties are
     payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation"
     the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
     legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
     periodic) tax return.  Please contact us beforehand to
     let us know your plans and to work out the details.

WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of
public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed
in machine readable form.

The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time,
public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses.
Money should be paid to the:
"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."

If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or
software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at:
hart@pobox.com

[Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only
when distributed free of all fees.  Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by
Michael S. Hart.  Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be
used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be
they hardware or software or any other related product without
express permission.]

*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*

